Selected quad for the lemma: prayer_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
prayer_n word_n world_n worship_v 65 3 7.2781 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54945 A discourse of prayer wherein this great duty is stated, so as to oppose some principles and practices of Papists and fanaticks; as they are contrary to the publick forms of the Church of England, established by her ecclesiastical canons, and confirmed by acts of Parliament. By Thomas Pittis, D.D. one of His Majesties chaplains in ordinary. Wherefore, that way and profession in religion, which gives the best directions for it, (viz. prayer) with the most effectual motives to it, and most aboundeth in its observance, hath therein the advantage of all others. Dr. Owen in his preface to his late discourse of the work of the Holy SPirit in prayer, &c. Pittis, Thomas, 1636-1687. 1683 (1683) Wing P2314; ESTC R220541 149,431 404

There are 34 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

we_o may_v know_v their_o opinion_n and_o practice_n too_o in_o this_o point_n from_o bellarmin_n who_o be_v the_o great_a champion_n for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o that_o at_o the_o close_a of_o every_o tome_n of_o his_o controversy_n he_o join_v the_o virgin_n mary_n with_o god_n in_o the_o thanks_o he_o render_v for_o help_v in_o the_o composure_n praise_v be_v give_v to_o god_n and_o the_o bless_a virgin_n nay_o gregory_n de_fw-fr valentia_n exceed_v he_o in_o the_o transport_n for_o he_o possible_o as_o he_o think_v from_o good_a manner_n put_v the_o virgin_n before_o her_o son_n in_o the_o close_a of_o some_o of_o his_o book_n and_o say_v laus_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o beatae_fw-la virgini_fw-la mariae_fw-la &_o domino_fw-la jesus_n christo_fw-la praise_n be_v to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n and_o to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o whether_o his_o meaning_n be_v to_o constitute_v a_o new_a trinity_n by_o discard_n the_o old_a omit_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o change_v that_o sacred_a person_n for_o the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n i_o must_v leave_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o the_o conquest_n in_o the_o battle_n at_o lepanto_n be_v plain_o ascribe_v not_o to_o god_n but_o to_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n which_o appear_v by_o their_o festival_n in_o memory_n of_o it_o call_v festum_fw-la sanctae_fw-la mariae_fw-la à_fw-la victoriâ_fw-la celebrate_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o october_n it_o be_v a_o common_a thing_n for_o the_o romanist_n in_o their_o prayer_n to_o angel_n or_o depart_v saint_n not_o only_o to_o beseech_v they_o to_o intercedein_a their_o behalf_n when_o intercession_n for_o man_n in_o heaven_n be_v plain_o found_v on_o their_o redemption_n upon_o earth_n and_o therefore_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o redemption_n be_v alone_o capacitate_v to_o be_v the_o mediator_n of_o intercession_n but_o they_o rely_v also_o on_o those_o who_o they_o invoke_v in_o such_o case_n for_o aid_n and_o protection_n nay_o for_o grace_n here_o and_o glory_n hereafter_o and_o in_o consequence_n of_o this_o all_o their_o curious_o invent_a distinction_n will_v never_o bring_v they_o off_o from_o the_o horrid_a guilt_n of_o give_v away_o god_n glory_n to_o another_o since_o by_o their_o petition_n they_o imply_v a_o dependence_n on_o creature_n who_o they_o invoke_v for_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v in_o god_n power_n alone_o to_o give_v what_o ever_o messenger_n some_o of_o they_o may_v be_v to_o convey_v the_o blessing_n of_o heaven_n to_o we_o and_o this_o must_v be_v odious_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v abominable_a to_o all_o good_a man_n who_o understand_v what_o religion_n mean_v but_o let_v we_o allow_v the_o evasion_n of_o the_o romanist_n in_o these_o point_n to_o be_v as_o cunning_a and_o plausible_a and_o witty_a as_o they_o please_v yet_o be_v not_o strange_a that_o the_o governor_n of_o a_o church_n shall_v compose_v prayer_n in_o such_o language_n and_o stile_n that_o the_o first_o and_o natural_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n must_v lead_v the_o simple_a into_o error_n and_o idolatry_n unless_o you_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v all_o schoolman_n that_o understand_v how_o to_o split_v a_o hair_n and_o know_v how_o to_o pick_v straw_n well_o that_o have_v the_o artificial_a knack_n of_o nicety_n and_o distinction_n or_o head_n so_o natural_o make_v for_o abstraction_n that_o they_o ken_v a_o dictinction_n as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v invent_v and_o utter_v by_o another_o and_o yet_o they_o can_v have_v nothing_o but_o these_o art_n and_o trick_n to_o save_v they_o from_o the_o edge_n of_o their_o own_o prayer_n and_o such_o a_o edge_n as_o be_v fatal_a too_o this_o be_v like_o make_v any_o point_n hard_a that_o be_v before_o easy_a that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v the_o honour_n of_o unridle_v the_o difficulty_n of_o his_o own_o make_n and_o render_v the_o same_o easy_a again_o and_o so_o end_v where_o he_o first_o begin_v this_o be_v only_o turn_v round_o over_o a_o rope_n to_o bring_v one_o head_n into_o its_o right_a place_n and_o to_o what_o purpose_n these_o thing_n be_v let_v the_o first_o inventor_n answer_v themselves_o it_o can_v otherwise_o appear_v to_o i_o but_o that_o these_o thing_n grow_v from_o atheism_n and_o irreligion_n and_o be_v design_v only_o to_o bring_v forth_o fruit_n convenient_a for_o this_o world_n but_o no_o way_n procure_v glory_n in_o the_o next_o for_o if_o there_o be_v a_o god_n who_o man_n ought_v to_o worship_v with_o their_o mind_n and_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o with_o their_o body_n in_o which_o all_o present_a at_o it_o aught_o to_o be_v and_o be_v concern_v and_o in_o which_o they_o shall_v unanimous_o join_v what_o a_o monstrous_a thing_n be_v it_o to_o have_v the_o expression_n in_o this_o service_n so_o word_v that_o they_o be_v right_o to_o be_v understand_v only_o by_o the_o learned_a whilst_o the_o people_n may_v by_o the_o termination_n of_o their_o worship_n in_o that_o to_o which_o they_o immediate_o address_v not_o understand_v the_o force_n of_o a_o distinction_n or_o if_o they_o do_v its_o acute_a operation_n to_o save_v themselves_o from_o the_o danger_n they_o be_v in_o by_o their_o public_a service_n be_v idolater_n in_o practice_n though_o they_o may_v hate_v the_o name_n and_o the_o thing_n too_o if_o once_o they_o have_v it_o explain_v to_o they_o however_o their_o priest_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n may_v shift_v for_o themselves_o and_o it_o be_v beyond_o my_o knowledge_n to_o know_v how_o they_o can_v god_n deliver_v we_o from_o such_o devotion_n of_o which_o so_o gross_a and_o thick_a ignorance_n be_v the_o mother_n which_o yet_o how_o far_o it_o may_v excuse_v the_o vulgar_a to_o who_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v invincible_a i_o shall_v leave_v to_o the_o great_a god_n to_o judge_v together_o with_o all_o those_o who_o be_v resolve_v that_o their_o hazard_n shall_v be_v continue_v to_o themselves_o by_o refuse_v to_o follow_v their_o own_o understanding_n but_o willing_o permit_v their_o priest_n to_o lead_v they_o in_o the_o dark_a it_o be_v easy_o it_o seem_v and_o for_o aught_o they_o know_v much_o more_o pleasant_a to_o be_v always_o blind_a than_o to_o see_v such_o be_v like_o the_o samaritan_n our_o saviour_n rebuke_n joh._n 4.22_o who_o be_v resolve_v to_o worship_n in_o the_o mountain_n although_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o worship_v but_o let_v we_o who_o be_v member_n of_o the_o best_a church_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n continue_v to_o offer_v to_o the_o great_a god_n such_o prayer_n as_o we_o understand_v that_o both_o the_o affection_n and_o intention_n of_o our_o mind_n may_v bear_v a_o due_a proportion_n to_o our_o expression_n let_v we_o whatever_o other_o do_v devout_o pray_v to_o the_o supreme_a god_n in_o and_o through_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n since_o we_o be_v encourage_v thus_o to_o come_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v find_v help_n in_o time_n of_o need_n i_o have_v prove_v in_o a_o former_a part_n of_o this_o discourse_n that_o god_n only_a be_v to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o that_o such_o service_n as_o we_o account_v divine_a be_v not_o to_o be_v give_v to_o another_o i_o have_v also_o show_v that_o our_o word_n in_o prayer_n must_v be_v plain_a and_o intelligible_a as_o well_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v grave_n and_o serious_a that_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o mind_n may_v accompany_v and_o guard_v the_o expression_n of_o our_o tongue_n but_o such_o rule_n man_n apparent_o transgress_v who_o pray_v in_o a_o language_n which_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v or_o to_o angel_n or_o depart_v saint_n or_o to_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n when_o they_o adore_v the_o host_n and_o worship_v a_o wafer_n such_o thing_n as_o these_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n of_o christianity_n and_o god_n grant_v that_o they_o may_v never_o again_o be_v introduce_v among_o ourselves_o in_o these_o last_o age_n of_o the_o world_n that_o so_o christ_n may_v find_v a_o true_a faith_n and_o devotion_n too_o here_o upon_o the_o earth_n when_o he_o come_v ride_v triumphant_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o pass_v sentence_n upon_o the_o whole_a world_n let_v we_o resist_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o janissary_n with_o the_o same_o argument_n by_o which_o our_o saviour_n baffle_v the_o devil_n get_v thou_o behind_o i_o satan_n for_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v matth._n 4.10_o and_o this_o example_n and_o text_n together_o methinks_v shall_v abash_v all_o pretend_v and_o deter_v all_o real_a christian_n from_o make_v any_o religious_a address_n to_o immortal_a angel_n or_o saint_n depart_v and_o much_o more_o to_o any_o creature_n
in_o the_o mean_a time_n these_o wilful_a or_o at_o least_o ignorant_a separatist_n pretend_v still_o with_o the_o great_a confidence_n to_o be_v the_o best_a if_o not_o the_o only_a worfhipper_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n but_o this_o assertion_n be_v vain_a and_o fond_a because_o first_o they_o usual_o separate_v what_o the_o great_a god_n have_v join_v and_o accept_v together_o nor_o do_v they_o worship_v he_o or_o at_o least_o they_o account_v it_o not_o necessary_a with_o their_o outward_a man_n as_o well_o as_o with_o the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n it_o be_v true_a indeed_o bodily_a worship_n profit_v little_a yet_o something_o it_o do_v but_o nothing_o at_o all_o when_o it_o be_v divorce_v from_o the_o intention_n and_o affection_n of_o the_o mind_n because_o it_o be_v a_o perfect_a demonstration_n of_o hypocrisy_n which_o be_v very_o odious_a both_o to_o god_n and_o man_n but_o yet_o man_n can_v well_o pretend_v the_o devotion_n of_o their_o mind_n especial_o so_o as_o to_o convince_v other_o when_o it_o be_v not_o accompany_v with_o humble_a and_o suitable_a deportment_n of_o their_o body_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o regard_n to_o be_v have_v to_o man_n bodily_a gesture_n when_o they_o pretend_v to_o pay_v homage_n and_o worship_n to_o god_n then_o if_o we_o argue_v like_o man_n that_o have_v reasonable_a soul_n give_v they_o to_o discern_v betwixt_o good_a and_o evil_a it_o must_v be_v because_o our_o maker_n know_v the_o design_n of_o our_o heart_n do_v not_o expect_v external_a demonstration_n of_o what_o he_o conclude_v to_o be_v lodge_v within_o we_o but_o then_o we_o need_v no_o other_o pain_n to_o address_v ourselves_o but_o only_o to_o raise_v our_o conception_n to_o the_o strong_a and_o most_o fix_a thought_n nimble_a apprehension_n will_v be_v enough_o to_o compose_v a_o prayer_n and_o it_o will_v be_v utterance_n sufficient_a if_o we_o do_v but_o only_o temper_v our_o lip_n cough_v and_o raiseflegm_n into_o our_o throat_n nay_o without_o any_o action_n of_o our_o body_n at_o all_o if_o our_o prayer_n be_v compose_v or_o rather_o intend_v within_o ourselves_o without_o the_o delivery_n of_o our_o own_o invention_n or_o any_o signification_n of_o the_o purport_n of_o our_o heart_n by_o the_o language_n of_o our_o tongue_n and_o if_o this_o be_v right_a woman_n themselves_o may_v bring_v forth_o too_o without_o any_o travail_n or_o pain_n to_o they_o if_o they_o can_v but_o keep_v their_o own_o counsel_n but_o alas_o such_o notion_n as_o these_o in_o those_o prayer_n which_o be_v in_o common_a do_v not_o signify_v so_o much_o as_o a_o man_n that_o gape_v when_o he_o ought_v to_o speak_v for_o even_o word_n in_o prayer_n serve_v only_o to_o utter_v our_o mind_n and_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o external_a sign_n and_o representation_n of_o what_o we_o have_v before_o inward_o conceive_v and_o since_o this_o be_v by_o all_o man_n of_o sense_n account_v to_o be_v a_o service_n acceptable_a to_o god_n why_o may_v he_o not_o receive_v the_o signature_n and_o impression_n of_o our_o soul_n by_o any_o other_o corporal_a demonstration_n why_o can_v the_o lift_n up_o of_o our_o hand_n to_o our_o mouth_n and_o kiss_v they_o as_o in_o old_a time_n be_v proper_a adoration_n why_o can_v incline_v our_o head_n or_o bow_v our_o body_n still_o continue_v to_o be_v a_o certain_a token_n of_o reverence_n and_o submission_n and_o of_o worship_n too_o why_o can_v kneeling_z or_o prostration_n upon_o the_o ground_n religious_o signify_v the_o humility_n devotion_n and_o the_o most_o profound_a lowliness_n of_o our_o mind_n especial_o since_o it_o be_v as_o old_a as_o david_n to_o worship_n and_o fall_v down_o and_o to_o kneel_v also_o before_o the_o lord_n our_o maker_n but_o if_o such_o reason_n may_v not_o be_v admit_v by_o those_o who_o account_v all_o reason_n carnal_a from_o the_o experience_n of_o their_o own_o especial_o when_o it_o contradict_v themselves_o if_o man_n can_v at_o all_o be_v bring_v to_o themselves_o nay_o but_o so_o far_o as_o not_o to_o think_v that_o adam_n fall_n have_v not_o beat_v out_o the_o brain_n of_o his_o posterity_n if_o we_o approve_o use_v word_n in_o our_o devotion_n to_o god_n although_o he_o know_v our_o conceive_a petition_n when_o no_o expression_n be_v utter_v by_o our_o mouth_n discern_v our_o thought_n a_o far_o off_o nor_o do_v i_o desire_v that_o even_o this_o plain_a position_n may_v be_v precarious_a or_o grant_v by_o adversary_n without_o proof_n since_o if_o they_o will_v but_o yield_v god_n to_o be_v a_o spirit_n they_o may_v easy_o conjecture_v that_o he_o can_v be_v more_o quick_o sensible_a of_o the_o thought_n of_o our_o soul_n especial_o if_o they_o account_v he_o to_o be_v infinite_a too_o by_o a_o certain_a near_o and_o pry_a intuition_n the_o mode_n of_o which_o be_v not_o so_o adapt_v to_o our_o apprehension_n than_o have_v not_o the_o organ_n of_o sense_n by_o which_o we_o understand_v and_o express_v thing_n he_o can_v be_v say_v in_o a_o literal_a sense_n to_o hear_v our_o prayer_n but_o for_o all_o this_o in_o public_a prayer_n we_o have_v other_o to_o join_v with_o we_o as_o we_o use_v word_n to_o signify_v our_o petition_n which_o express_v the_o sentiment_n of_o our_o mind_n so_o do_v we_o also_o by_o habit_n and_o gesture_n represent_v our_o devotion_n and_o conception_n to_o other_o to_o raise_v their_o affection_n in_o proportion_n to_o our_o own_o that_o they_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a understand_v what_o we_o be_v about_o may_v be_v incline_v to_o assent_v and_o say_v amen_o and_o be_v prevail_v on_o to_o frame_v themselves_o into_o the_o same_o resemblance_n of_o mind_n and_o body_n that_o there_o may_v not_o only_o be_v a_o unity_n in_o our_o common_a worship_n but_o uniformity_n too_o and_o if_o these_o other_o sign_n beside_o word_n in_o the_o posture_n of_o our_o body_n or_o both_o in_o conjunction_n may_v effectual_o conduce_v to_o the_o same_o end_n which_o be_v the_o raise_n and_o signify_v our_o devotion_n i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o the_o action_n of_o other_o member_n of_o our_o body_n beside_o the_o articulate_a motion_n of_o our_o tongue_n that_o notorious_o declare_v profound_a humility_n and_o present_v our_o devotion_n and_o signify_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o the_o world_n unless_o it_o be_v to_o those_o who_o be_v resolve_v to_o shut_v they_o in_o their_o prayer_n to_o avoid_v the_o argument_n our_o homage_n to_o and_o dependence_n on_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v use_v in_o worship_v our_o maker_n as_o well_o as_o word_n which_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o understand_v one_o another_o have_v improve_v and_o make_v copious_a by_o custom_n and_o art_n and_o a_o long_a time_n since_o be_v render_v fashionable_a in_o the_o world_n as_o be_v more_o ready_a than_o other_o sign_n and_o representation_n from_o any_o different_a member_n of_o the_o body_n for_o these_o be_v also_o the_o action_n and_o labour_n of_o the_o tongue_n and_o lip_n it_o will_v appear_v to_o all_o man_n that_o in_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n the_o body_n ought_v to_o accompany_v the_o mind_n they_o be_v such_o intimate_a and_o unite_a friend_n that_o both_o make_v but_o one_o man_n because_o any_o that_o in_o private_a address_v themselves_o to_o god_n when_o they_o be_v in_o different_a apartment_n from_o one_o another_o and_o when_o they_o enter_v into_o their_o closet_n and_o be_v still_o if_o they_o pray_v with_o any_o earnestness_n and_o affection_n be_v move_v to_o it_o by_o the_o consideration_n of_o that_o great_a god_n to_o who_o they_o address_v their_o own_o meanness_n when_o compare_v to_o he_o or_o the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o obtain_v those_o thing_n which_o they_o petition_v for_o they_o express_v their_o mind_n with_o such_o server_fw-la and_o humility_n as_o affect_v their_o body_n and_o cast_v they_o into_o posture_n that_o customary_o signify_v and_o represent_v these_o thing_n to_o other_o man_n however_o methinks_v they_o who_o dissent_v from_o the_o service_n of_o our_o church_n be_v advance_v to_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o other_o oughts_z in_o justice_n to_o declaim_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o man_n body_n since_z common_o the_o motion_n and_o activity_n of_o their_o body_n in_o all_o even_o their_o public_a devotion_n be_v that_o which_o more_o recommend_v they_o to_o their_o people_n than_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o petition_n or_o the_o decency_n of_o the_o word_n by_o which_o they_o express_v it_o but_o let_v we_o argue_v this_o thing_n fair_o with_o ourselves_o and_o then_o can_v any_o man_n who_o have_v strip_v himself_o of_o prejudice_n and_o prepossession_n in_o his_o inquiry_n about_o the_o worship_n of_o his_o maker_n do_v otherwise_o than_o conclude_v that_o we_o near_o arrive_v at_o the_o perfection_n of_o that_o homage_n due_a to_o he_o by_o how_o much_o
understand_v the_o meaning_n of_o what_o be_v in_o the_o text_n forbid_a either_o by_o what_o be_v translate_v vain_a repetition_n or_o from_o the_o custom_n of_o those_o heathen_n who_o be_v say_v to_o use_v they_o the_o word_n use_v by_o the_o evangelist_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o you_o pray_v do_v not_o speak_v as_o battus_n do_v now_o though_o suidas_n explain_v it_o by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d speak_v much_o yet_o the_o text_n even_o in_o the_o prime_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n prohibit_v all_o frequent_a repetition_n of_o the_o same_o sense_n and_o language_n as_o one_o battus_n do_v from_o who_o name_n part_n of_o the_o compound_a verb_n be_v take_v and_o translate_v into_o the_o text_n who_o make_v long_a hymn_n full_a of_o tautology_n he_o be_v a_o very_a idle_a and_o empty_a poet._n as_o to_o what_o maldonate_fw-it mention_n of_o another_o of_o the_o same_o name_n who_o have_v a_o hesitation_n or_o stammer_n in_o his_o speech_n deliver_v such_o thick_a and_o swift_a language_n that_o it_o be_v difficult_a to_o understand_v he_o this_o can_v be_v no_o cause_n of_o the_o prohibition_n of_o our_o saviour_n for_o this_o be_v only_o a_o natural_a infirmity_n and_o not_o any_o careless_a or_o affect_v extravagance_n can_v be_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o caution_n and_o it_o be_v reject_v by_o the_o jesuit_n himself_o second_o we_o may_v more_o full_o understand_v what_o be_v here_o forbid_a by_o a_o brief_a reflection_n upon_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o heathen_n in_o this_o matter_n for_o say_v the_o text_n use_v not_o vain_a repetition_n as_o the_o heathen_n do_v now_o the_o heathen_n as_o may_v appear_v from_o their_o tragedian_n be_v wont_a many_o time_n in_o their_o worship_n to_o make_v repetition_n of_o the_o same_o word_n especial_o of_o the_o name_n of_o that_o god_n which_o they_o pray_v unto_o and_o they_o conjecture_v also_o that_o by_o how_o much_o the_o loud_o and_o more_o shrill_a their_o speech_n be_v so_o much_o the_o more_o ready_a will_v their_o god_n be_v to_o give_v they_o audience_n and_o to_o return_v answer_n to_o their_o petition_n to_o this_o custom_n do_v elijah_n seem_v to_o allude_v when_o he_o speak_v ironical_o to_o baal_n prophet_n 1_o king_n 18.27_o cry_v aloud_o for_o he_o be_v a_o god_n either_o he_o be_v talk_v or_o he_o be_v pursue_v or_o he_o be_v on_o a_o journey_n or_o peradventure_o he_o sleep_v and_o must_v be_v awake_v now_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o separatist_n be_v conceive_v extempore_o he_o deliver_v those_o thing_n and_o word_n that_o a_o quick_a fancy_n and_o sudden_a invention_n prompt_v he_o to_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v that_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o such_o worship_n he_o will_v be_v necessitate_v to_o use_v these_o prohibit_v repetition_n for_o where_o matter_n and_o method_n yea_o and_o expression_n too_o be_v not_o before_o hand_n study_v and_o compose_v and_o put_v into_o some_o decent_a order_n the_o memory_n can_v firm_o retain_v what_o have_v be_v before_o utter_v when_o the_o fancy_n and_o invention_n have_v all_o along_o be_v so_o strict_o employ_v which_o be_v evident_a from_o this_o that_o a_o gift_a man_n who_o speak_v extempore_o can_v afterward_o remember_v his_o own_o prayer_n or_o give_v any_o tolerable_a account_n to_o man_n of_o what_o he_o have_v before_o speak_v to_o god_n so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o thousand_o to_o one_o in_o this_o attempt_n but_o something_o both_o in_o matter_n and_o phrase_n will_v often_o be_v bring_v upon_o the_o stage_n again_o and_o several_a petition_n escape_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o such_o extraordinary_a pretender_n that_o have_v more_o than_o once_o be_v present_v before_o for_o their_o prayer_n be_v wire-drawn_a into_o one_o length_n or_o deliver_v in_o a_o continue_a and_o uninterrupted_a chain_n of_o language_n and_o expression_n that_o must_v not_o admit_v of_o any_o large_a chasm_n or_o long_a intermission_n but_o one_o thing_n must_v follow_v close_o at_o the_o back_n of_o another_o how_o can_v it_o be_v consider_v humane_a frailty_n and_o indisposition_n but_o through_o the_o defect_n of_o present_a and_o ready_a invention_n there_o must_v be_v some_o large_a gape_a silence_n or_o else_o barrenness_n must_v be_v supply_v with_o the_o repetition_n of_o what_o have_v go_v before_o nay_o how_o often_o have_v we_o hear_v lord_n lord_n and_o we_o pray_v thou_o and_o we_o beseech_v thou_o and_o the_o like_a expression_n to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o invention_n or_o to_o draw_v a_o cover_n over_o inadvertent_n and_o incoherent_a thought_n of_o the_o man_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v much_o gift_v in_o this_o affair_n so_o that_o then_o he_o be_v fain_o to_o stop_v gap_n in_o stead_n of_o make_v a_o new_a hedge_n he_o cough_v and_o spit_n in_o the_o room_n of_o a_o full_a stream_n of_o language_n and_o seem_v to_o be_v like_o a_o pump_n when_o the_o water_n be_v go_v away_o with_o a_o hiss_n make_v a_o great_a hollow_a noise_n with_o little_a sense_n or_o signification_n and_o like_o the_o heathen_a priest_n that_o worship_v baal_n who_o from_o morning_n till_o noon_n cry_v out_o o_o baal_n hear_v we_o 1_o king_n 18.26_o and_o very_o probable_o to_o as_o little_a purpose_n whilst_o there_o be_v no_o voice_n nor_o any_o that_o answer_n or_o else_o like_o those_o mutinous_a ephesian_n stir_v up_o by_o the_o subtlety_n of_o a_o silver-smith_n with_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o defence_n of_o their_o trade_n who_o for_o the_o space_n of_o two_o long_a hour_n cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n great_a be_v diana_n of_o the_o ephesian_n act_n 19.34_o and_o whether_o such_o a_o worship_n when_o strong_a lung_n become_v the_o bellows_o to_o blow_v man_n up_o that_o they_o may_v vent_v themselves_o in_o tautology_n and_o repetition_n and_o break_a sentence_n when_o they_o pretend_v to_o utter_v a_o continue_a prayer_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o supreme_a god_n and_o to_o be_v present_v in_o such_o loose_a petition_n to_o he_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o glorious_a intercede_v redeemer_n let_v any_o that_o be_v not_o resolve_v to_o be_v prejudice_v against_o any_o reason_n in_o this_o affair_n and_o be_v not_o stupid_a or_o wilful_a to_o a_o proverb_n consider_v first_o and_o then_o in_o god_n name_n let_v they_o judge_v but_o lest_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o a_o usual_a recrimination_n in_o this_o particular_a i_o must_v observe_v here_o what_o be_v easy_o infer_v from_o a_o transient_a reflection_n upon_o the_o former_a exposition_n that_o all_o repetition_n be_v not_o vain_a nor_o such_o as_o be_v prohibit_v by_o our_o saviour_n but_o as_o maldonate_fw-it express_v it_o he_o forbid_v supervacaneam_fw-la &_o inanem_fw-la study_v affectatam_fw-la verborum_fw-la copiam_fw-la a_o superfluous_a and_o a_o empty_a affect_a plenty_n of_o word_n when_o we_o permit_v our_o language_n too_o much_o to_o overflow_v our_o sense_n and_o abound_v in_o expression_n as_o the_o heathen_a do_v because_o they_o think_v to_o be_v hear_v for_o their_o much_o speak_v they_o conjecture_v it_o seem_v that_o such_o plenty_n of_o word_n may_v cause_v the_o deaf_a of_o their_o god_n to_o hear_v they_o when_o they_o pelt_v they_o with_o volley_n of_o thick_a language_n and_o that_o they_o will_v better_o understand_v the_o matter_n and_o substance_n of_o what_o they_o offer_v in_o their_o petition_n and_o more_o easy_o remember_v all_o when_o thing_n be_v so_o frequent_o inculcate_v by_o repetition_n but_o alas_o the_o heathen_n worship_v one_o sort_n of_o god_n but_o the_o christian_n present_v their_o prayer_n to_o another_o and_o as_o man_n notion_n concern_v the_o god_n who_o they_o worship_v vary_v so_o will_v their_o worship_n vary_v too_o if_o they_o act_v suitable_o to_o the_o argument_n and_o inference_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n if_o man_n therefore_o who_o so_o bustle_v in_o this_o world_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o address_v themselves_o to_o the_o deity_n will_v but_o impartial_o state_n the_o nature_n of_o that_o be_v to_o who_o they_o devote_v their_o act_n of_o religion_n and_o then_o compare_v their_o worship_n which_o they_o give_v he_o with_o those_o attribute_n by_o which_o they_o describe_v he_o and_o inquire_v diligent_o what_o be_v worthy_a of_o he_o we_o need_v not_o have_v so_o many_o division_n where_o all_o worship_n the_o same_o god_n about_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o reveal_v nor_o foment_n disturbance_n about_o those_o that_o be_v since_o it_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n be_v suppose_v that_o god_n will_v require_v worship_n from_o christian_n that_o do_v not_o correspond_v to_o his_o essence_n and_o attribute_n when_o he_o have_v declare_v that_o he_o will_v be_v worship_v in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n and_o that_o he_o seek_v such_o to_o worship_v he_o but_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v and_o to_o return_v to_o the_o
so_o take_v as_o they_o be_v with_o these_o long-winded_a gift_n of_o some_o man_n since_o we_o know_v what_o kind_n of_o cattle_n they_o be_v that_o first_o devour_v widow_n house_n and_o for_o a_o pretence_n make_v long_a prayer_n matth._n 23.14_o but_o indeed_o it_o be_v not_o a_o multitude_n of_o word_n but_o sincerity_n of_o mind_n and_o earnestness_n of_o affection_n that_o will_v prevail_v with_o god_n to_o be_v propitious_a to_o we_o for_o as_o the_o same_o father_n have_v it_o much_o speech_n be_v one_o thing_n but_o a_o continual_a daily_a affection_n another_o now_o this_o raise_n our_o affection_n to_o their_o proper_a object_n inflame_v our_o desire_n and_o testify_v our_o humility_n and_o dependence_n on_o god_n be_v great_a design_n and_o end_n of_o our_o devotion_n and_o those_o prayer_n be_v best_o compose_v that_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n be_v most_o capable_a to_o cause_v these_o effect_n it_o follow_v that_o such_o a_o tedious_a length_n in_o a_o continue_a and_o uninterrupted_a chain_n of_o petition_n not_o well_o accomplish_v the_o great_a end_n and_o design_n of_o prayer_n can_v be_v so_o fit_a to_o be_v offer_v to_o god_n who_o require_v our_o best_a and_o most_o lively_a service_n and_o will_v not_o accept_v another_o sacrifice_n when_o to_o borrow_v a_o expression_n we_o have_v a_o male_a in_o the_o flock_n add_v to_o this_o final_o what_o strange_a confession_n man_n usual_o make_v who_o be_v force_v to_o lay_v hold_n of_o every_o advantage_n to_o gain_v a_o topick_n to_o lengthen_v what_o they_o call_v prayer_n when_o he_o be_v account_v the_o most_o powerful_a man_n that_o remain_v long_a at_o this_o exercise_n the_o gift_a person_n be_v own_o sin_n as_o have_v be_v remark_v before_o be_v usual_o present_v for_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o they_o must_v permit_v he_o who_o they_o account_v to_o be_v their_o minister_n to_o tell_v lie_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o people_n if_o all_o his_o auditory_a be_v not_o guilty_a of_o the_o same_o particular_a crime_n with_o himself_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o a_o general_a confession_n of_o commission_n and_o omission_n all_o mankind_n may_v join_v in_o because_o as_o the_o apostle_n express_v it_o we_o have_v all_o sin_v and_o come_v short_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n rom._n 3._o 23._o or_o in_o the_o true_a and_o secure_a word_n of_o our_o liturgy_n we_o have_v leave_v undo_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v and_o have_v do_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v do_v but_o to_o extend_v a_o solemn_a and_o public_a confession_n to_o the_o length_n of_o all_o the_o command_v of_o god_n and_o all_o those_o fault_n of_o man_n that_o we_o can_v reduce_v to_o such_o comprehensive_a law_n together_o with_o their_o circumstance_n and_o aggravation_n and_o for_o one_o man_n in_o public_a to_o acknowledge_v as_o the_o mouth_n of_o all_o the_o people_n that_o we_o have_v break_v all_o these_o commandment_n of_o god_n both_o in_o thought_n word_n and_o deed_n when_o perhaps_o few_o or_o none_o of_o those_o in_o who_o name_n he_o present_v such_o confession_n have_v actual_o and_o plain_o without_o a_o figure_n commit_v murder_n adultery_n theft_n or_o the_o like_a be_v to_o render_v devout_a man_n more_o vile_a than_o they_o be_v to_o give_v as_o i_o have_v hint_v to_o the_o very_a heathen_a a_o opportunity_n both_o of_o scorn_n and_o triumph_n to_o tell_v a_o lie_n in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o solemnize_v a_o falsehood_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n who_o be_v a_o god_n of_o truth_n himself_o can_v but_o hate_v all_o lie_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o other_o and_o beside_o what_o a_o impudence_n be_v this_o to_o utter_v such_o thing_n in_o our_o confession_n to_o he_o who_o be_v our_o maker_n and_o our_o judge_n that_o be_v not_o only_o doubtful_a but_o untrue_a in_o which_o consider_v people_n can_v join_v with_o other_o that_o make_v they_o because_o they_o must_v acknowledge_v guilt_n before_o they_o have_v yet_o commit_v the_o crime_n and_o condemn_v themselves_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n when_o neither_o their_o own_o conscience_n accuse_v they_o nor_o do_v god_n himself_o convict_v and_o judge_v they_o such_o invention_n the_o evil_a spirit_n himself_o may_v not_o only_o allow_v but_o recommend_v to_o the_o world_n because_o they_o too_o frequent_o not_o only_o teach_v man_n how_o vile_a the_o confessor_n be_v himself_o but_o how_o many_o way_n god_n commandment_n may_v be_v break_v by_o they_o and_o instruct_v the_o people_n in_o new_a way_n of_o offend_a god_n which_o they_o be_v ignorant_a in_o before_o now_o whether_o such_o service_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o great_a god_n who_o the_o christian_n worship_n who_o can_v and_o will_v severe_o revenge_v himself_o on_o those_o that_o thus_o public_o affront_v his_o majesty_n who_o can_v lie_v but_o be_v a_o be_v of_o infinite_a splendour_n and_o perfection_n and_o delight_v not_o in_o the_o blemish_n of_o the_o halt_n and_o blind_a who_o final_o be_v a_o god_n that_o be_v omniscient_a and_o acquaint_v with_o the_o sincerity_n and_o truth_n of_o man_n confession_n and_o to_o what_o end_n and_o design_n they_o be_v utter_v who_o know_v the_o conveniency_n wisdom_n and_o ardour_n of_o our_o devotion_n and_o the_o original_n and_o height_n of_o all_o the_o substance_n and_o circumstance_n of_o our_o prayer_n together_o with_o all_o the_o part_n of_o they_o i_o shall_v leave_v to_o all_o wise_a and_o think_v religious_a man_n to_o consider_v when_o they_o be_v unprejudiced_a and_o retire_a by_o themselves_o chap._n xvi_o i_o shall_v in_o this_o chapter_n urge_v another_o reason_n against_o the_o strange_a extempore_o prayer_n of_o our_o separatist_n to_o evidence_n that_o their_o public_a devotion_n be_v not_o suitable_a to_o the_o greatness_n and_o glory_n of_o that_o god_n who_o they_o pretend_v to_o worship_v and_o that_o be_v because_o general_o those_o who_o they_o admit_v to_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o their_o congregation_n manage_v their_o prayer_n in_o so_o careless_a and_o loose_a a_o manner_n as_o if_o they_o have_v more_o thoughtfulness_n about_o that_o by_o which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o recommend_v themselves_o to_o man_n than_o that_o by_o which_o they_o attempt_v to_o approve_v themselves_o too_o god_n otherwise_o what_o mean_v the_o great_a variety_n and_o reiteration_n of_o expression_n when_o they_o petition_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n the_o great_a god_n can_v certain_o be_v render_v more_o propitious_a or_o receive_v a_o more_o convince_a and_o prevail_a argument_n to_o grant_v relief_n and_o a_o supply_n to_o man_n necessity_n because_o various_a phrase_n express_v their_o want_n and_o every_o time_n they_o have_v occasion_n to_o renew_v their_o petition_n for_o the_o same_o favour_n they_o do_v it_o in_o different_a language_n and_o method_n because_o it_o be_v not_o the_o rhetoric_n or_o copiousness_n of_o word_n but_o the_o affection_n humility_n and_o piety_n of_o mankind_n recommend_v by_o the_o merit_n and_o intercession_n of_o christ_n that_o now_o incline_v the_o great_a god_n to_o hear_v our_o prayer_n and_o grant_v our_o request_n yet_o various_a phrase_n do_v indeed_o please_v and_o captivate_v the_o fancy_n of_o many_o weak_a and_o unstable_a man_n and_o give_v advantage_n to_o the_o design_n of_o schism_n by_o some_o man_n licens_v themselves_o to_o take_v a_o liberty_n in_o suit_v their_o prayer_n to_o the_o temperament_n and_o humour_n of_o such_o person_n who_o these_o lead_a shepherd_n intend_v to_o fold_v among_o their_o separate_a flock_n and_o therefore_o be_v it_o that_o they_o love_v not_o the_o language_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v grave_a and_o manly_a and_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v but_o they_o adapt_v their_o expression_n to_o certain_a tone_n and_o particular_a mimical_a and_o surprise_v gesture_n by_o which_o they_o captivate_v silly_a woman_n or_o melancholy_a man_n who_o they_o find_v possess_v with_o more_o passion_n than_o understanding_n this_o i_o suppose_v to_o have_v be_v the_o great_a reason_n and_o motive_n why_o the_o papist_n resolve_v by_o all_o possible_a mean_n to_o rend_v we_o in_o piece_n first_o introduce_v this_o way_n of_o extempore_o prayer_n far_o different_a from_o that_o mental_a prayer_n of_o mr._n cressy_n which_o a_o late_a author_n so_o jesuitical_o refute_v as_o may_v more_o large_o appear_v to_o any_o candid_a reader_n in_o a_o little_a book_n entitle_v fox_n and_o firebrand_n but_o if_o some_o such_o end_n by_o which_o they_o plain_o gratify_v the_o papist_n be_v not_o design_v by_o the_o master_n of_o our_o private_a assembly_n who_o lord_n it_o over_o the_o faith_n of_o some_o man_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o other_o to_o draw_v as_o many_o as_o they_o be_v able_a into_o the_o net_n which_o they_o have_v spread_v
part_n of_o those_o who_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v have_v separate_v from_o it_o and_o it_o may_v give_v some_o rebuke_n to_o the_o bold_a confidence_n of_o such_o man_n as_o be_v not_o so_o harden_v that_o they_o think_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o repentance_n or_o that_o the_o shame_n which_o attend_v it_o will_v be_v worse_o to_o they_o than_o the_o want_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o check_v the_o rude_a presumption_n of_o those_o who_o to_o exalt_v themselves_o assume_v too_o large_a a_o familiarity_n with_o their_o maker_n and_o now_o i_o shall_v trouble_v the_o reader_n with_o very_o little_o more_o be_v conscious_a to_o myself_o how_o much_o i_o have_v already_o tire_v any_o that_o have_v have_v patience_n to_o read_v this_o discourse_n quite_o through_o yet_o because_o extravagant_a and_o very_a lofty_a man_n pretend_v to_o inspiration_n in_o such_o matter_n as_o these_o as_o if_o the_o holy_a spirit_n dictate_v matter_n and_o word_n to_o all_o saint_n when_o they_o thus_o pray_v extempore_o if_o it_o be_v true_a i_o acknowledge_v myself_o to_o have_v blaspheme_v in_o this_o discourse_n but_o if_o it_o be_v false_a as_o i_o very_o believe_v it_o be_v than_o they_o themselves_o have_v blaspheme_v the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o to_o make_v a_o judgement_n in_o this_o case_n i_o shall_v only_o entreat_v treat_v the_o impartial_a reader_n who_o i_o suppose_v be_v come_v thus_o far_o with_o i_o to_o our_o journey_n end_n 1._o to_o consider_v if_o what_o i_o have_v say_v be_v argumentative_a to_o convince_v he_o than_o the_o blasphemy_n remain_v in_o the_o presumption_n of_o our_o adversary_n on_o their_o own_o side_n 2._o if_o their_o prayer_n be_v thus_o inspire_v they_o will_v be_v equal_o canonical_a with_o the_o scripture_n for_o what_o make_v the_o scripture_n a_o rule_n of_o life_n but_o because_o they_o be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n from_o god_n 2_o tim._n 3.16_o and_o saint_n peter_n inform_v we_o that_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n speak_v in_o old_a time_n as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o pet._n 1.21_o and_o though_o man_n have_v be_v at_o sundry_a time_n and_o in_o divers_a manner_n speak_v unto_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n yet_o it_o be_v god_n who_o deliver_v his_o message_n unto_o man_n heb._n 1.1_o and_o because_o he_o inspire_v the_o writer_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o new_a to_o a_o delivery_n of_o what_o their_o word_n and_o writing_n have_v present_v to_o the_o world_n therefore_o we_o receive_v they_o as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n and_o endeavour_v to_o manage_v our_o life_n by_o they_o god_n almighty_a have_v no_o where_o declare_v what_o book_n be_v scripture_n and_o what_o not_o but_o this_o we_o learn_v by_o such_o argument_n as_o convince_v we_o that_o the_o man_n that_o write_v they_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o can_v these_o man_n prayer_n of_o which_o we_o now_o discourse_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v dictate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o will_v be_v equal_o valid_a with_o the_o scripture_n for_o as_o in_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n if_o the_o historical_a part_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v true_a the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v include_v in_o the_o history_n will_n by_o the_o same_o evidence_n appear_v true_a also_o so_o if_o we_o allow_v the_o confession_n petitition_n and_o thanksgiving_n of_o these_o person_n to_o be_v inspire_v the_o proposition_n on_o which_o they_o be_v found_v and_o all_o the_o doctrine_n insinuate_v in_o they_o will_v be_v admit_v as_o a_o effect_n of_o the_o inspiration_n also_o and_o than_o what_o inspire_a controversy_n shall_v we_o have_v nay_o there_o will_v not_o only_o be_v addition_n to_o the_o sacred_a canon_n which_o st._n john_n be_v quote_v by_o themselves_o to_o have_v prohibit_v and_o doctrine_n also_o and_o prayer_n too_o that_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o that_o sacred_a writ_n which_o have_v be_v derive_v as_o a_o complete_a rule_n for_o sundry_a age_n but_o we_o must_v receive_v such_o large_a appendix_n that_o they_o will_v not_o only_o surmount_v all_o popish_a tradition_n though_o they_o shall_v superadd_a those_o of_o the_o jew_n but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o evangelist_n without_o any_o or_o but_o a_o little_a hyperbole_n that_o if_o they_o be_v write_v the_o world_n itself_o can_v not_o contain_v the_o book_n because_o the_o prayer_n of_o these_o be_v so_o various_a and_o long_a and_o beside_o this_o it_o will_v level_v the_o prophet_n our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n prayer_n to_o the_o rude_a and_o indigested_a and_o extravagant_a conception_n which_o our_o natural_a enthusiast_n utter_v in_o those_o which_o all_o man_n call_v extempore_o prayer_n 3._o if_o these_o man_n have_v that_o extraordinary_a assistance_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n or_o such_o a_o inspiration_n to_o which_o so_o bold_a a_o pretence_n be_v make_v then_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n must_v be_v render_v inconsistent_a with_o itself_o since_o it_o will_v frame_v tedious_a and_o long_a prayer_n contrary_a to_o that_o plain_a fullness_n and_o convenient_a brevity_n which_o we_o find_v in_o those_o that_o be_v record_v in_o sacred_a writ_n as_o deliver_v by_o the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n or_o even_o our_o saviour_n himself_o and_o then_o the_o example_n mention_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n will_v seem_v to_o be_v change_v by_o extraordinary_a motion_n from_o his_o own_o spirit_n last_o consider_v that_o notwithstanding_o all_o our_o extempore_o mens_fw-la pretension_n their_o prayer_n can_v be_v the_o product_n of_o inspiration_n dictate_v to_o the_o speaker_n matter_n and_o word_n because_o this_o sudden_a deceive_a knack_n be_v plain_o discoverable_a by_o those_o that_o know_v and_o can_v use_v it_o also_o as_o well_o as_o themselves_o to_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o quickness_n of_o invention_n in_o one_o who_o remember_v scripture_n phrase_n who_o have_v a_o voluble_a and_o ready_a tongue_n and_o it_o be_v gain_v only_o by_o frequent_a use_n together_o with_o little_a art_n in_o the_o composure_n at_o several_a time_n it_o be_v do_v by_o change_v the_o place_n of_o expression_n or_o alter_v the_o method_n so_o that_o it_o can_v easy_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o vulgar_a and_o all_o be_v but_o like_o the_o exercise_n of_o a_o military_a company_n of_o man_n whole_a front_n or_o rear_v rank_n or_o file_n be_v quick_o alter_v by_o one_o or_o few_o word_n of_o command_n and_o this_o great_a gift_n as_o it_o be_v call_v by_o some_o advance_v or_o grow_v weak_a according_a to_o the_o increase_n or_o decay_v of_o natural_a ability_n the_o abatement_n of_o knowledge_n or_o the_o sprightlyness_n and_o activity_n of_o man_n part_n the_o strength_n of_o memory_n or_o the_o infirmity_n of_o it_o the_o volubility_n of_o speech_n or_o the_o hesitation_n and_o stop_v in_o it_o and_o the_o practice_n or_o disuse_n of_o this_o extempore_o way_n etc._n etc._n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v boldness_n and_o bashfulness_n fear_n and_o a_o good_a assurance_n and_o the_o like_a hence_o a_o right_n reverend_a prelate_n not_o long_o since_o decease_v when_o before_o he_o arrive_v at_o this_o honour_n though_o he_o be_v always_o a_o very_a great_a man_n he_o be_v please_v to_o write_v concern_v this_o gift_n of_o prayer_n be_v willing_a to_o subject_v it_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o art_n that_o so_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n in_o all_o its_o infusion_n into_o good_a man_n may_v be_v suppose_v only_o to_o spiritualise_v their_o judgement_n and_o affection_n that_o they_o may_v be_v both_o sanctify_a and_o raise_v which_o may_v as_o well_o be_v in_o form_n of_o devotion_n as_o in_o conceive_v and_o extempore_o prayer_n and_o now_o i_o have_v do_v with_o all_o that_o i_o intend_v at_o present_a to_o write_v on_o this_o subject_a but_o if_o any_o reader_n shall_v find_v a_o objection_n which_o be_v neither_o in_o this_o discourse_n obviate_v in_o the_o state_n nor_o already_o answer_v in_o particular_a instance_n i_o must_v then_o refer_v he_o to_o several_a case_n of_o conscience_n publish_v by_o sundry_a minister_n of_o london_n very_o late_o exhibit_v to_o the_o world_n and_o more_o yet_o that_o be_v to_o come_v forth_o and_o when_o they_o receive_v a_o full_a answer_n i_o may_v perhaps_o be_v convince_v by_o it_o although_o the_o most_o that_o i_o have_v yet_o see_v seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v prickle_n in_o they_o that_o for_o their_o brethren_n as_o they_o call_v they_o to_o attempt_v a_o reply_n will_v render_v they_o like_o thing_n gnaw_v thistle_n yet_o man_n may_v adventure_v at_o what_o they_o please_v and_o i_o will_v assure_v they_o it_o shall_v be_v all_o one_o to_o i_o whether_o don_n quixot_n encounter_v a_o flock_n of_o sheep_n or_o a_o windmill_n the_o conclusion_n the_o learned_a vossius_fw-la
therefore_o have_v shine_v bright_a warm_v a_o chaos_n into_o a_o orderly_a creation_n and_o bring_v we_o forth_o to_o be_v subordinate_a governor_n over_o the_o work_n of_o god_n hand_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o it_o enlighten_v we_o to_o a_o sense_n of_o duty_n and_o heat_n our_o zeal_n to_o worship_n and_o adore_v since_o we_o can_v choose_v but_o pay_v our_o esteem_n unless_o injustice_n check_v ingenuity_n to_o man_n among_o ourselves_o suitable_a to_o the_o excellency_n inherent_a in_o they_o thus_o far_o i_o suppose_v mankind_n be_v agree_v and_o i_o may_v modest_o challenge_v the_o universal_a vogue_n to_o vouch_v the_o assertion_n but_o now_o the_o thought_n of_o man_n will_v differ_v and_o temperament_n or_o interest_n will_v sway_v their_o mind_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o mode_n of_o address_n for_o the_o discourse_n of_o man_n be_v oftentimes_o as_o different_a as_o their_o complexion_n and_o the_o sentiment_n and_o disposition_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v very_o servile_a in_o attend_v upon_o the_o temperament_n of_o the_o body_n beside_o the_o power_n of_o custom_n and_o education_n it_o be_v very_o difficult_a to_o disentangle_v the_o soul_n from_o those_o fetter_n in_o which_o prejudice_n have_v chain_v it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v free_a in_o its_o inference_n and_o conclusion_n hence_o be_v it_o that_o though_o we_o all_o agree_v upon_o the_o be_v of_o a_o god_n and_o that_o adoration_n and_o worship_n be_v due_a to_o he_o yet_o the_o act_n compound_v and_o the_o ceremony_n attend_v it_o have_v raise_v so_o many_o schism_n and_o contention_n among_o man_n that_o they_o seem_v to_o agree_v in_o nothing_o but_o resolution_n always_o to_o differ_v that_o we_o may_v say_v therefore_o to_o these_o wind_n be_v still_o and_o rebuke_v the_o storm_n which_o disturb_v the_o world_n that_o some_o serenity_n may_v at_o last_o appear_v when_o the_o cloud_n be_v scatter_v i_o have_v take_v the_o subject_n of_o prayer_n to_o discourse_v on_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n that_o ought_v to_o attend_v the_o course_n of_o our_o life_n to_o which_o our_o own_o necessity_n prompt_v we_o our_o dependence_n upon_o god_n reasonable_o require_v and_o his_o command_n render_v it_o indispensible_a but_o yet_o because_o the_o variety_n of_o man_n apprehension_n and_o interest_n which_o controvert_v every_o thing_n have_v perplex_v this_o i_o will_v willing_o be_v as_o instrumental_a as_o i_o can_v in_o settle_v your_o mind_n in_o a_o point_n of_o such_o universal_a concernment_n especal_o at_o this_o separate_a time_n of_o lent_n in_o which_o our_o public_a devotion_n be_v more_o frequent_a and_o with_o a_o great_a solemnity_n enjoin_v and_o praictise_v accompany_v with_o fast_v and_o almsgiving_n those_o mighty_a resignation_n of_o ourselves_o and_o estate_n as_o sacrifice_n well_o please_v unto_o god_n and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v 1._o to_o explain_v this_o duty_n 2._o draw_v some_o inference_n from_o the_o discourse_n in_o the_o explication_n i_o shall_v show_v you_o these_o seven_o thing_n first_o what_o it_o be_v to_o pray_v second_o what_o may_v be_v the_o import_n of_o some_o precept_n and_o phrase_n in_o sacred_a writ_n which_o seem_v to_o set_v forth_o this_o duty_n of_o prayer_n as_o if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v continue_v without_o interruption_n three_o what_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o prayer_n or_o to_o who_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v this_o religious_a address_n four_o in_o what_o manner_n we_o ought_v to_o pray_v and_o this_o 1._o in_o relation_n to_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o mind_n 2._o with_o reference_n to_o the_o gesture_n of_o our_o body_n 3_o in_o relation_n to_o word_n and_o expression_n five_o for_o what_o we_o may_v lawful_o and_o aught_o to_o pray_v and_o this_o particular_a will_v involve_v person_n and_o thing_n six_o whether_o this_o duty_n of_o prayer_n be_v enjoin_v so_o that_o it_o be_v expect_v from_o all_o man_n or_o only_o such_o as_o be_v good_a and_o virtuous_a and_o last_o i_o shall_v consider_v whether_o it_o be_v so_o necessary_a or_o no_o since_o god_n already_o know_v our_o want_n and_o we_o can_v break_v the_o link_n that_o chain_v cause_n to_o effect_n nor_o alter_v the_o almighty_n decree_n or_o providence_n by_o any_o of_o our_o wish_n or_o prayer_n from_o the_o state_v and_o resolution_n of_o which_o particular_n i_o shall_v at_o last_o infer_v three_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o service_n or_o prayer_n of_o our_o own_o church_n be_v so_o frame_v and_o perform_v that_o god_n do_v accept_v they_o and_o be_v a_o proper_a method_n of_o address_v to_o he_o second_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v most_o irrational_a and_o abominable_o peccant_a in_o she_o last_o that_o such_o as_o live_v among_o ourselves_o and_o yet_o separate_v from_o we_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o great_a reformation_n and_o a_o more_o pure_a and_o evangelical_n worship_n do_v not_o perform_v their_o service_n to_o god_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o be_v suitable_a to_o his_o attribute_n man_n dependence_n and_o the_o infinite_a distance_n betwixt_o their_o creator_n and_o themselves_o chap._n i._n have_v thus_o exhibit_v my_o design_a method_n i_o address_v myself_o to_o the_o first_o particular_a to_o show_v what_o it_o be_v to_o pray_v and_o because_o many_o may_v conjecture_v that_o my_o labour_n may_v be_v excuse_v in_o this_o since_o common_a practice_n will_v just_o supersede_n this_o scruple_n i_o shall_v be_v very_o brief_a in_o the_o resolution_n prayer_n then_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o offer_n up_o our_o desire_n unto_o god_n in_o which_o the_o soul_n have_v the_o honour_n and_o advantage_n too_o of_o breathe_v forth_o its_o wish_n to_o our_o maker_n lodging_n they_o in_o the_o bosom_n and_o heart_n of_o our_o intercessor_n and_o through_o he_o petition_v relief_n to_o supply_v all_o its_o necessity_n and_o want_n now_o although_o this_o when_o complete_a be_v join_v with_o confession_n and_o thanksgiving_n yet_o i_o shall_v not_o exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o prayer_n those_o be_v duty_n distinct_a from_o this_o and_o each_o require_v a_o different_a explication_n various_a man_n conceive_v divers_a definition_n of_o prayer_n but_o yet_o they_o be_v distingish_v by_o word_n and_o phrase_n more_o than_o sense_n one_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v a_o discourse_n or_o a_o converse_n with_o god_n another_o a_o ascend_a of_o the_o soul_n to_o he_o and_o man_n exemplify_v this_o duty_n by_o a_o multitude_n of_o metaphor_n that_o rather_o obscure_v than_o explain_v the_o thing_n nay_o some_o set_v up_o jacob_n ladder_n in_o this_o case_n for_o angel_n to_o make_v their_o descent_n from_o heaven_n that_o they_o may_v obtain_v again_o a_o sensible_a and_o direct_a passage_n upward_o mount_v into_o the_o region_n above_o carrying_z man_n petition_n under_o their_o wing_n and_o then_o convey_v the_o blessing_n of_o god_n down_o to_o they_o this_o may_v indeed_o be_v allow_v for_o rhetoric_n but_o it_o neither_o explain_v or_o argue_v the_o thing_n we_o may_v better_o guess_v at_o our_o prayer_n unto_o god_n by_o reflect_v on_o our_o petition_n to_o man_n in_o which_o we_o always_o signify_v our_o desire_n which_o we_o earnest_o wish_v for_o and_o humble_o beg_v the_o grant_n of_o and_o this_o i_o think_v to_o be_v the_o common_a notion_n we_o have_v of_o prayer_n which_o no●man_n that_o at_o all_o consider_v can_v refuse_v to_o give_v his_o assent_n to_o now_o this_o be_v make_v when_o direct_v unto_o god_n either_o in_o the_o inflame_a and_o ardent_a desire_v of_o our_o mind_n when_o devout_o fix_v our_o intention_n upon_o he_o we_o secret_o wish_v what_o we_o do_v not_o express_v with_o our_o tongue_n and_o we_o may_v easy_o suppose_v this_o method_n available_a when_o the_o action_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v perform_v to_o he_o who_o as_o well_o understand_v the_o affection_n of_o our_o mind_n as_o the_o language_n of_o our_o mouth_n and_o discern_v our_o heart_n as_o well_o as_o hear_v our_o word_n but_o our_o prayer_n to_o god_n be_v also_o express_v by_o those_o instrument_n of_o speech_n which_o he_o have_v frame_v as_o well_o for_o his_o service_n as_o our_o own_o when_o we_o put_v the_o wish_n and_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n into_o suitable_a and_o expressive_a language_n rehearse_v this_o with_o the_o due_a and_o humble_a intention_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o affection_n correspondent_a to_o our_o petition_n and_o this_o be_v of_o two_o sort_n either_o private_a or_o public_a 1._o private_a and_o this_o either_o of_o husband_n and_o wife_n who_o be_v in_o a_o sense_n but_o one_o flesh_n have_v some_o necessity_n betwixt_o themselves_o but_o yet_o be_v distinct_a from_o other_o require_v different_a and_o more_o secret_a petition_n 2._o there_o be_v a_o private_a pray_v most_o proper_o so_o which_o every_o man_n do_v or_o aught_o to_o perform_v single_o by_o himself_o when_o first_o examine_v his_o
state_n and_o condition_n he_o devout_o beg_v what_o he_o want_v either_o in_o relation_n to_o himself_o alone_o or_o as_o a_o member_n of_o some_o particular_a society_n or_o else_o as_o he_o be_v within_o a_o large_a community_n the_o whole_a race_n of_o mankind_n and_o of_o this_o sort_n of_o prayer_n it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n speak_v in_o that_o never_o to_o be_v parallel_v sermon_n on_o the_o mount_n but_o thou_o when_o thou_o pray_v enter_v into_o thy_o closet_n and_o shut_v the_o door_n and_o pray_v unto_o thy_o father_n which_o be_v in_o secret_a and_o thy_o father_n which_o see_v in_o secret_a shall_v reward_v thou_o open_o matth._n 6.6_o a_o sufficient_a caveat_n to_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi and_o the_o hypocrite_n and_o a_o distinction_n betwixt_o these_o and_o the_o disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o 2._o there_o be_v public_a prayer_n as_o well_o as_o private_a and_o that_o either_o in_o and_z with_o our_o family_n which_o be_v indeed_o small_a congregation_n when_o the_o master_n exercise_v the_o office_n of_o the_o priest_n and_z in_o his_o absence_n have_v thus_o much_o of_o his_o authority_n to_o intercede_v on_o earth_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o his_o family_n and_o to_o become_v the_o mouth_n and_o orator_n for_o the_o rest_n that_o altogether_o by_o a_o conjunction_n of_o affection_n and_o unity_n in_o word_n may_v petition_v those_o thing_n necessary_a for_o they_o in_o common_a with_o other_o of_o humane_a nature_n and_o in_o those_o relation_n they_o bear_v to_o the_o family_n and_o to_o each_o other_o but_o 2._o prayer_n that_o be_v more_o public_a be_v such_o as_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n or_o other_o place_n of_o christian_a assembly_n consign_v to_o these_o public_a office_n and_o by_o a_o solemn_a dedication_n set_v apart_o to_o sacred_a and_o divine_a use_n and_o this_o i_o shall_v have_v a_o more_o special_a regard_n to_o in_o what_o i_o shall_v recommend_v to_o your_o consideration_n in_o this_o discourse_n though_o man_n may_v also_o apply_v the_o particular_n to_o their_o private_a devotion_n as_o frequent_o as_o they_o shall_v find_v they_o rational_o suit_v and_o in_o this_o i_o will_v not_o seem_v to_o lay_v any_o yoke_n on_o the_o neck_n of_o disciple_n which_o they_o in_o reason_n may_v refuse_v to_o bear_v now_o public_a prayer_n in_o more_o solemn_a convention_n and_o among_o great_a number_n assemble_v together_o have_v so_o apparent_o be_v offer_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n both_o under_o the_o old_a and_o new-testament_n that_o the_o pretention_n to_o a_o proof_n can_v not_o but_o be_v deem_v vain_a and_o foolish_a this_o be_v the_o result_n of_o reason_n and_o assemble_v together_o for_o common_a worship_n be_v a_o duty_n imprint_v on_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n to_o the_o performance_n of_o which_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n have_v be_v their_o conduct_n and_o if_o it_o require_v any_o argument_n at_o all_o from_o reason_n we_o may_v present_o understand_v that_o by_o this_o god_n honour_n be_v exalt_v when_o we_o joint_o give_v a_o public_a testimony_n of_o our_o piety_n and_o religion_n that_o by_o this_o we_o propagate_v these_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n and_o by_o our_o example_n provoke_v and_o stir_v up_o other_o to_o join_v in_o the_o same_o duty_n with_o ourselves_o that_o common_a request_n such_o as_o in_o public_a we_o be_v suppose_v to_o make_v to_o which_o every_o individual_a may_v say_v amen_o require_v a_o joint_n and_o common_a consent_n and_o when_o our_o prayer_n be_v thus_o connect_v with_o the_o unity_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o spirit_n they_o gain_v great_a degree_n of_o power_n like_o a_o twist_a cord_n they_o become_v more_o strong_a and_o prevalent_a with_o god_n they_o offer_v a_o sacred_a violence_n to_o heaven_n and_o because_o god_n be_v please_v with_o such_o a_o sacrifice_n draw_v down_o favour_n from_o the_o father_n of_o mercy_n moreover_o such_o prayer_n be_v apt_a to_o be_v offer_v up_o with_o great_a reverence_n and_o devotion_n when_o service_n be_v perform_v in_o a_o sacred_a place_n in_o which_o god_n be_v more_o especial_o present_a at_o least_o by_o his_o disperse_a train_n of_o angel_n where_o the_o object_n of_o sense_n cast_v a_o secret_a awe_n upon_o our_o mind_n and_o the_o mode_n and_o circumstance_n of_o such_o public_a and_o divine_a worship_n attend_v with_o proper_a ceremony_n and_o solemnity_n be_v apt_a to_o move_v we_o to_o humility_n and_o adoration_n to_o excite_v within_o we_o the_o affection_n of_o our_o mind_n to_o fix_v our_o intention_n that_o they_o may_v be_v unite_v to_o their_o object_n make_v our_o passion_n such_o as_o be_v divine_a and_o recall_v those_o swim_n and_o toss_v thought_n which_o at_o any_o time_n be_v apt_a to_o wander_v and_o final_o when_o our_o most_o solemn_a prayer_n shall_v be_v offer_v by_o a_o ordain_v or_o consecrate_v person_n sacred_a or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o separate_v from_o the_o world_n to_o this_o employment_n and_o dedicate_v unto_o god_n by_o resignation_n and_o solemnity_n by_o his_o own_o devotion_n and_o our_o saviour_n institution_n that_o he_o may_v become_v a_o secondary_a intercessor_n betwixt_o the_o people_n and_o their_o creator_n he_o weep_v betwixt_o the_o porch_n and_o the_o altar_n and_o cry_v out_o to_o heaven_n for_o pardon_n and_o deliverance_n in_o that_o sacred_a language_n spare_v we_o good_a lord_n spare_v thy_o people_n it_o can_v be_v but_o such_o a_o service_n must_v sound_v as_o pleasant_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v acceptable_a and_o rapturous_a to_o good_a man_n and_o when_o we_o be_v thus_o gather_v together_o exercise_v the_o most_o exalt_a strain_n of_o our_o mind_n when_o they_o be_v screw_v beyond_o ordinary_a proportion_n christ_n himself_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o we_o he_o join_v in_o our_o intercession_n and_o prayer_n the_o holy_a angel_n spread_v their_o wing_n over_o we_o to_o adorn_v the_o solemnity_n and_o god_n himself_o behold_v we_o from_o above_o look_v through_o the_o cloud_n with_o smile_n upon_o we_o smell_v a_o sweetness_n from_o the_o incense_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o that_o he_o may_v look_v far_o dissipate_v all_o intercept_n cloud_n and_o this_o shall_v suffice_v to_o show_v what_o prayer_n be_v chap._n ii_o let_v we_o now_o in_o the_o second_o place_n consider_v what_o may_v be_v the_o import_n of_o some_o phrase_n and_o precept_n in_o sacred_a writ_n which_o seem_v to_o set_v forth_o this_o duty_n of_o prayer_n as_o if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v continue_v without_o interruption_n the_o euchites_n of_o old_a be_v apt_a to_o conclude_v such_o precept_n and_o phrase_n as_o pray_v without_o cease_v continue_v instant_a in_o prayer_n and_o the_o like_a to_o be_v obligatory_a in_o the_o full_a latitude_n of_o their_o expression_n as_o if_o man_n be_v to_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o pray_v yet_o other_o duty_n that_o be_v require_v of_o we_o both_o as_o christian_n and_o man_n too_o abundant_o refute_v such_o unreasonable_a interpretation_n beside_o the_o allotment_n of_o all_o moral_a or_o pious_a action_n ought_v to_o be_v proportionate_a to_o their_o end_n as_o the_o quantity_n of_o a_o dose_n of_o physic_n be_v increase_v or_o diminish_v according_a to_o the_o distemper_n of_o the_o patient_n vary_v so_o to_o temperament_n and_o season_n as_o may_v best_o expel_v the_o venom_n of_o the_o disease_n resist_v its_o violence_n and_o recover_v health_n to_o he_o that_o want_v it_o now_o a_o great_a design_n and_o end_n of_o prayer_n be_v to_o raise_v fervour_n and_o devotion_n in_o our_o soul_n it_o ought_v no_o long_o to_o continue_v than_o we_o be_v able_a to_o keep_v up_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o thought_n the_o elevation_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o the_o due_a order_n and_o sally_n of_o our_o affection_n hence_o be_v it_o that_o we_o be_v inform_v by_o s._n austin_n that_o the_o christian_n in_o egypt_n have_v frequent_a prayer_n be_v brief_a ejaculation_n and_o short_a collect_v that_o a_o tedious_a continuation_n may_v not_o weary_a their_o affection_n but_o their_o mind_n may_v be_v intend_v suitable_a to_o the_o seriousness_n and_o gravity_n of_o the_o duty_n and_o they_o may_v not_o prove_v either_o flat_a or_o stupid_a lest_o the_o prayer_n itself_o shall_v in_o the_o progress_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o effusion_n of_o word_n without_o attention_n or_o manifestation_n of_o affection_n from_o whence_o also_o our_o own_o church_n have_v order_v her_o public_a service_n so_o as_o to_o consist_v of_o various_a and_o distinct_a part_n suitable_a to_o the_o variety_n and_o diversity_n of_o our_o affection_n that_o all_o may_v be_v successive_o employ_v and_o none_o at_o once_o too_o long_o burden_v and_o therefore_o our_o prayer_n be_v usual_o brief_a give_v intervall_n and_o respite_n both_o to_o priest_n and_o people_n that_o their_o soul_n and_o affection_n
may_v recover_v strength_n and_o retrieve_v their_o vigour_n by_o these_o small_a interruption_n and_o not_o suffer_v too_o great_a a_o weakness_n to_o steal_v insensible_o upon_o they_o by_o be_v always_o bend_v to_o their_o utmost_a power_n therefore_o the_o precept_n and_o phrase_n in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o seem_v to_o import_v continuance_n in_o prayer_n can_v be_v design_v in_o the_o utmost_a latitude_n which_o the_o sound_n of_o word_n may_v usual_o imply_v but_o they_o must_v admit_v of_o limitation_n and_o restraint_n so_o that_o to_o be_v short_a in_o this_o we_o continue_v in_o prayer_n and_o pray_v without_o cease_v and_o the_o like_a 1._o when_o we_o have_v such_o prepare_v and_o ardent_a love_n to_o our_o maker_n ourselves_o and_o the_o fellow_n creature_n of_o our_o own_o species_n that_o the_o exciting_a cause_n of_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n be_v always_o present_a when_o the_o opportunity_n of_o this_o duty_n offer_v themselves_o 2._o when_o we_o keep_v ourselves_o in_o a_o perpetual_a readiness_n and_o aptitude_n for_o devotion_n when_o ever_o we_o have_v time_n and_o occasion_n and_o the_o reason_n for_o prayer_n return_v upon_o we_o for_o as_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o be_v prepare_v for_o death_n because_o we_o know_v not_o how_o sudden_o it_o may_v assault_v we_o so_o we_o must_v endeavour_v to_o preserve_v such_o a_o settle_a temper_n in_o our_o own_o mind_n that_o our_o intention_n and_o affection_n may_v be_v ready_a to_o exert_v themselves_o in_o prayer_n upon_o any_o emergent_a or_o periodical_a occasion_n 3._o when_o we_o perform_v the_o solemn_a duty_n of_o our_o devotion_n with_o the_o high_a strain_n and_o fervour_n of_o our_o soul_n continue_v instant_a in_o prayer_n when_o a_o long_a protraction_n or_o a_o seem_a denial_n of_o a_o answer_n to_o our_o petition_n do_v not_o discourage_v we_o to_o a_o relaxation_n or_o the_o omission_n of_o our_o duty_n but_o our_o diligence_n be_v renew_v our_o supplication_n double_v and_o we_o add_v force_n and_o vigour_n to_o our_o prayer_n this_o we_o be_v teach_v by_o that_o excellent_a parable_n of_o the_o unjust_a judge_n and_o importunate_a widow_n to_o the_o end_n say_v the_o text_n that_o man_n ought_v always_o to_o pray_v and_o not_o to_o faint_v luke_o 18.1_o last_o we_o may_v be_v then_o say_v to_o pray_v without_o cease_v to_o continue_v instant_a in_o prayer_n to_o pray_v always_o and_o the_o like_a when_o we_o make_v the_o return_n of_o our_o prayer_n frequent_a and_o our_o supplication_n to_o god_n be_v willing_o present_v as_o often_o as_o time_n and_o opportunity_n be_v afford_v we_o at_o least_o it_o can_v come_v short_a of_o this_o to_o make_v prayer_n our_o every_o day_n work_v so_o that_o nullâ_fw-la die_fw-la intermittantur_fw-la certa_fw-la tempora_fw-la orandi_fw-la we_o must_v not_o omit_v our_o state_v time_n and_o hour_n of_o devotion_n and_o this_o will_v appear_v no_o less_o rational_a than_o prayer_n itself_o be_v pleasant_a and_o advantageous_a when_o we_o shall_v consider_v that_o we_o be_v dependent_a being_n and_o daily_o need_v the_o influence_n of_o heaven_n to_o supply_v our_o necessity_n and_o relieve_v our_o want_n and_o the_o kind_a providence_n of_o almighty_n god_n to_o support_v and_o nourish_v we_o the_o continual_a casualty_n we_o be_v liable_a to_o and_o the_o frequent_a danger_n we_o be_v involve_v in_o by_o our_o own_o inadvertency_n the_o snare_n of_o the_o world_n the_o net_n which_o unfaithful_a or_o malicious_a man_n spread_v for_o we_o and_o the_o violence_n or_o insinuation_n of_o the_o devil_n may_v call_v upon_o we_o for_o our_o daily_a prayer_n to_o he_o who_o have_v promise_v to_o hear_v and_o to_o deliver_v we_o the_o daily_a present_v our_o prayer_n to_o god_n be_v recommend_v to_o we_o by_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n and_o offering_n of_o the_o law_n numb_a 28._o at_o the_o beginning_n these_o be_v type_n of_o the_o christian_a service_n which_o be_v perform_v morning_n and_o evening_n become_v our_o solemn_a and_o reasonable_a devotion_n evening_n morning_n and_o at_o noon_n too_o will_v i_o pray_v and_o cry_v aloud_o say_v david_n psal_n 55.17_o and_o daniel_n think_v prayer_n so_o indispensable_a a_o duty_n that_o rather_o than_o omit_v it_o he_o will_v endure_v the_o utmost_a severity_n even_o to_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o lion_n den_n dan._n 6.10_o this_o be_v enjoin_v in_o that_o prayer_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v to_o be_v both_o our_o form_n and_o our_o pattern_n where_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o petition_v our_o daily_a bread_n day_n by_o day_n nor_o do_v he_o only_o by_o this_o prohibit_v too_o inordinate_a a_o care_n for_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n but_o injoin_v we_o to_o testify_v our_o continual_a dependence_n upon_o our_o maker_n command_v frequent_a and_o daily_a petition_n and_o it_o be_v but_o reasonable_a that_o we_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o enemy_n shall_v now_o serve_v god_n without_o fear_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n luke_o 1.75_o of_o which_o comprehensive_a duty_n our_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n be_v necessary_a part_n and_o thus_o much_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o second_o particular_a mention_v in_o the_o scheme_n of_o this_o discourse_n to_o consider_v what_o may_v be_v the_o import_n of_o some_o phrase_n and_o precept_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o set_v forth_o this_o duty_n of_o prayer_n as_o if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v continue_v without_o intermission_n chap._n iii_o i_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o head_n of_o this_o discourse_n of_o prayer_n to_o make_v some_o enquiry_n concern_v the_o object_n of_o it_o and_o determine_v to_o who_o we_o ought_v to_o address_v ourselves_o in_o our_o religious_a devotion_n of_o this_o kind_n and_o this_o must_v without_o all_o peradventure_o be_v only_o to_o the_o supreme_a god_n the_o creator_n and_o governor_n of_o all_o being_n inferior_a to_o himself_o we_o honour_v as_o we_o ought_v the_o grace_n and_o virtue_n of_o saint_n depart_v and_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o just_a be_v sacred_a to_o we_o we_o admire_v also_o the_o excellency_n of_o angel_n and_o praise_n god_n for_o the_o various_a and_o useful_a workmanship_n of_o his_o hand_n nay_o we_o treat_v all_o thing_n in_o our_o thought_n and_o discourse_n with_o that_o esteem_n which_o be_v suitable_a to_o their_o being_n or_o that_o order_n which_o they_o possess_v in_o the_o universe_n and_o we_o advance_v our_o contemplation_n when_o we_o think_v of_o angel_n suitable_a to_o the_o purity_n and_o limit_a perfection_n of_o their_o being_n and_o their_o honourable_a employment_n of_o be_v the_o messenger_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n who_o have_v legion_n of_o they_o at_o his_o disposal_n but_o there_o be_v from_o he_o neither_o command_n nor_o argument_n for_o invocation_n of_o they_o nor_o any_o reason_n to_o expect_v their_o aid_n otherwise_o than_o they_o be_v order_v by_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n we_o therefore_o make_v no_o address_n to_o they_o by_o solemn_a prayer_n and_o separate_v devotion_n because_o we_o be_v afraid_a to_o pay_v such_o service_n to_o a_o creature_n which_o must_v necessary_o detract_v from_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o our_o creator_n only_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o we_o pay_v our_o ceremony_n and_o demonstration_n of_o respect_n to_o man_n on_o earth_n suitable_a to_o their_o natural_a or_o acquire_v dignity_n and_o common_a justice_n command_v our_o internal_a value_n and_o esteem_v in_o some_o proportion_n to_o their_o excellency_n and_o virtue_n but_o we_o do_v not_o present_o fall_v down_o and_o worship_v every_o one_o that_o be_v rich_o adorn_v nor_o petition_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o in_o his_o power_n to_o bestow_v nay_o to_o proceed_v as_o far_o as_o we_o can_v without_o idolatry_n or_o sin_n we_o shall_v not_o refuse_v to_o pay_v such_o civil_a testimony_n of_o our_o respect_n as_o the_o patriarch_n of_o old_a give_v either_o to_o glorify_a saint_n or_o innocent_a and_o ever_o bless_a angel_n shall_v they_o at_o any_o time_n assume_v shape_n and_o mix_v themselves_o among_o dust_n and_o ash_n to_o negotiate_v any_o affair_n with_o we_o and_o descend_v to_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o humane_a conversation_n provide_v that_o we_o have_v sufficient_a time_n to_o examine_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o apparition_n that_o we_o may_v be_v assure_v we_o be_v not_o impose_v on_o either_o by_o the_o devil_n in_o the_o likeness_n of_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n nor_o the_o s_o light_n and_o trick_n of_o cunning_a priest_n or_o any_o false_a appearance_n to_o our_o own_o imagination_n or_o either_o subtle_a or_o roguish_a invention_n of_o other_o man_n but_o may_v have_v good_a assurance_n that_o we_o be_v not_o delude_v yet_o it_o will_v not_o at_o all_o from_o hence_o follow_v that_o act_n of_o religion_n appropriate_v to_o god_n may_v be_v perform_v to_o
object_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o one_o in_o who_o we_o may_v confide_v and_o trust_v since_o under_o the_o shadow_n of_o his_o wing_n there_o be_v safety_n he_o have_v declare_v that_o he_o keep_v mercy_n for_o thousand_o and_o the_o mark_n of_o it_o be_v visible_a in_o our_o being_n live_v and_o our_o allotment_n in_o this_o world_n and_o especial_o it_o appear_v in_o his_o wonderful_a redemption_n of_o mankind_n when_o he_o give_v his_o son_n to_o be_v a_o ransom_n for_o we_o all_o and_o receive_v he_o into_o heaven_n that_o he_o may_v fulfil_v his_o promise_n make_v on_o earth_n and_o make_v continual_a intercession_n for_o we_o in_o virtue_n of_o his_o bloody_a sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n to_o distrust_v the_o goodness_n of_o such_o a_o god_n will_v be_v both_o ungrateful_a and_o inhuman_a to_o be_v the_o most_o surly_a and_o vile_a pensioner_n in_o the_o world_n to_o provoke_v the_o utmost_a of_o his_o wrath_n and_o fury_n and_o we_o must_v unman_v ourselves_o before_o we_o can_v thus_o ungod_o the_o deity_n last_o that_o i_o may_v urge_v a_o most_o conclude_a argument_n god_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o prayer_n because_o he_o have_v command_v we_o thus_o to_o worship_v he_o and_o have_v prohibit_v the_o offering_n our_o religious_a devotion_n to_o any_o other_o this_o be_v engraven_v upon_o the_o table_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n which_o be_v of_o a_o stand_n and_o perpetual_a establishment_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o other_o god_n but_o himself_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o ourselves_o any_o idol_n to_o worship_n nor_o the_o similitude_n of_o any_o thing_n religious_o to_o fall_v down_o before_o it_o exod._n 20._o and_o he_o back_v the_o prohibition_n with_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o jealousy_n he_o have_v of_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o honour_n and_o a_o solemn_a declaration_n that_o he_o will_v severe_o punish_v the_o guilty_a we_o find_v therefore_o that_o when_o aaron_n to_o appease_v the_o multitude_n make_v a_o melt_a calf_n which_o the_o people_n suppose_v to_o be_v a_o representation_n of_o their_o deliverer_n and_o the_o god_n that_o bring_v they_o out_o of_o egypt_n rear_v a_o altar_n upon_o which_o they_o make_v their_o burn_a and_o peace_n offering_n though_o they_o seem_v to_o terminate_v their_o worship_n in_o god_n transfer_v their_o oblation_n through_o this_o representation_n to_o he_o that_o be_v superior_a to_o the_o offering_n and_o the_o idol_n make_v god_n the_o ultimate_a object_n of_o their_o devotion_n by_o proclaim_v this_o to_o be_v a_o feast_n unto_o jehovah_n yet_o we_o find_v that_o the_o fire_n kindle_v for_o this_o sacrifice_n make_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n to_o burn_v nor_o can_v moses_n intercession_n expiate_v the_o crime_n but_o he_o blot_v their_o name_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n there_o be_v immediate_o slay_v three_o thousand_o of_o they_o and_o god_n continue_v to_o plague_v the_o people_n scatter_v their_o carcase_n about_o the_o wilderness_n and_o in_o their_o progress_n visit_v this_o sin_n upon_o they_o exod._n 33._o nay_o man_n be_v not_o only_o thus_o caution_v by_o many_o precept_n and_o example_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o they_o approach_v not_o near_o the_o confine_n of_o idolatry_n to_o give_v god_n glory_n to_o another_o or_o his_o praise_n to_o grave_v or_o melt_a image_n too_o numerous_a for_o i_o to_o reckon_v up_o here_o and_o grant_v by_o all_o who_o have_v any_o knowledge_n of_o those_o scripture_n but_o god_n have_v sufficient_o forbid_v it_o under_o the_o new_a where_o he_o have_v appoint_v his_o worship_n more_o proportionate_a to_o his_o be_v and_o the_o service_n of_o christian_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o his_o nature_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n neither_o with_o the_o corporal_a representation_n of_o the_o samaritan_n nor_o in_o their_o schism_n nor_o yet_o according_a to_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o jew_n by_o bloody_a sacrifice_n or_o under_o type_n and_o shadow_n prefigure_v any_o messiah_n to_o come_v nor_o yet_o as_o the_o gentile_n by_o any_o of_o their_o inferior_a daemon_n when_o satan_n tempt_v our_o bless_a saviour_n with_o the_o same_o bait_n which_o other_o make_v a_o tender_a of_o to_o those_o who_o they_o endeavour_v to_o proselyte_n all_o these_o thing_n will_v i_o give_v thou_o if_o thou_o will_v fall_v down_o and_o worship_v i_o he_o present_o repel_v he_o with_o disdain_n and_o scorn_v get_v thou_o behind_o i_o satan_n for_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v matth._n 4.10_o if_o god_n will_v have_v be_v worship_v by_o the_o mediation_n of_o any_o but_o the_o great_a mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o the_o invisible_a god_n he_o will_v not_o have_v leave_v mankind_n in_o the_o dark_a but_o there_o will_v have_v appear_v light_n in_o this_o as_o well_o as_o other_o thing_n that_o seem_v not_o so_o considerable_a to_o have_v guide_v they_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o which_o he_o expect_v in_o his_o solemn_a worship_n from_o they_o but_o no_o direction_n to_o this_o appear_v nor_o can_v the_o scripture_n at_o all_o patronize_v it_o unless_o corrupt_v by_o false_a gloss_n and_o force_v interpretation_n yet_o the_o contrary_n be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n and_o all_o eye_n that_o be_v not_o blind_a may_v behold_v it_o angel_n themselves_o those_o glorious_a creature_n which_o be_v apt_a to_o draw_v the_o utmost_a of_o our_o civil_a respect_n to_o they_o refuse_v to_o share_v in_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o maker_n and_o prohibit_v the_o testimony_n of_o divine_a worship_n the_o angel_n which_o appear_v to_o converse_v with_o saint_n john_n when_o this_o belove_a disciple_n prostrate_v himself_o to_o worship_v he_o sudden_o reply_v see_v thou_o do_v it_o not_o and_o urge_v two_o argument_n to_o enforce_v his_o prohibition_n enough_o to_o deter_v all_o mankind_n from_o pay_v act_n of_o religion_n to_o a_o creature_n 1._o say_v he_o i_o be_o thy_o fellow_n servant_n and_o of_o thy_o brethren_n the_o offspring_n of_o the_o universal_a parent_n therefore_o such_o honour_n be_v not_o due_a to_o i_o 2._o god_n be_v the_o object_n of_o adoration_n such_o homage_n be_v just_o appropriate_v to_o himself_o and_o therefore_o say_v the_o angel_n worship_n god_n rev._n 19.10_o nay_o worship_a god_n by_o the_o mediation_n of_o angel_n beguile_v christian_n of_o the_o reward_n and_o crown_n which_o they_o strive_v for_o col._n 2.18_o and_o much_o more_o must_v they_o miss_v their_o recompense_n if_o they_o make_v their_o religious_a address_n to_o the_o angel_n themselves_o beg_v of_o they_o what_o be_v part_n of_o god_n prerogative_n to_o grant_v now_o as_o the_o invocation_n of_o these_o detract_v so_o much_o from_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o maker_n so_o much_o more_o do_v we_o derogate_v from_o his_o honour_n if_o we_o make_v religious_a petition_n unto_o saint_n for_o these_o be_v of_o a_o inferior_a classis_fw-la their_o nature_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o those_o embellishment_n that_o adorn_v angel_n therefore_o when_o cornelius_n fall_v down_o and_o worship_v saint_n peter_n he_o snatch_v he_o up_o and_o bid_v he_o stand_v upon_o his_o foot_n and_o forbear_v such_o signal_n of_o reverence_n to_o he_o which_o be_v usual_o pay_v in_o act_n of_o devotion_n for_o say_v he_o i_o myself_o also_o be_o a_o man_n act_v 10.26_o thus_o also_o do_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n refuse_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o lycaonian_o rend_v their_o clothes_n at_o their_o public_a blasphemy_n and_o intend_a idolatry_n and_o stop_v their_o sacrifice_n with_o a_o argument_n that_o methinks_v shall_v startle_v other_o we_o also_o be_v man_n of_o like_a passion_n with_o you_o act_n 14.15_o this_o be_v the_o last_o argument_n therefore_o why_o god_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o prayer_n because_o we_o be_v command_v to_o worship_v he_o in_o sacred_a writ_n and_o forbid_v to_o offer_v our_o devotion_n to_o another_o and_o this_o may_v suffice_v for_o answer_v to_o my_o three_o enquiry_n by_o show_v we_o to_o who_o we_o ought_v to_o make_v our_o religious_a address_n chap._n v._n i_o proceed_v now_o to_o inquire_v into_o the_o mode_n of_o our_o address_n to_o the_o great_a god_n who_o for_o his_o infinite_a excellency_n we_o adore_v and_o worship_n upon_o supposition_n that_o he_o only_o be_v to_o be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o religious_a devotion_n in_o which_o solemn_a prayer_n bear_v a_o great_a share_n in_o this_o some_o of_o the_o controversy_n among_o we_o raise_v by_o person_n who_o be_v go_v out_o from_o we_o will_v be_v something_o though_o not_o as_o much_o as_o i_o intend_v regard_v and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v inquire_v into_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v and_o 1._o with_o
reference_n to_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o mind_n 2._o in_o relation_n to_o the_o gesture_n of_o our_o body_n 3._o to_o show_v something_o which_o may_v regard_v our_o word_n and_o expression_n first_o the_o rnanner_n of_o our_o address_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o mind_n ought_v to_o be_v such_o as_o may_v include_v great_a activity_n in_o our_o rational_a faculty_n and_o exert_v our_o affection_n in_o some_o proportion_n to_o the_o value_n of_o our_o petition_n and_o the_o most_o glorious_a object_n who_o we_o invoke_v particular_o so_o that_o the_o more_o considerable_a and_o worthy_a our_o prayer_n be_v the_o more_o exalt_v and_o earnest_a must_v our_o desire_n be_v the_o external_a representation_n of_o any_o man_n devotion_n without_o the_o inward_a affection_n and_o fervency_n of_o his_o mind_n be_v act_n of_o hypocrisy_n not_o religion_n it_o be_v like_o the_o common_a dissimulation_n among_o ourselves_o when_o we_o fawn_v upon_o a_o man_n till_o we_o obtain_v a_o opportunity_n to_o devour_v he_o my_o son_n say_v wisdom_n give_v i_o thy_o heart_n prov._n 23.26_o and_o the_o first_o and_o great_a commandment_n of_o the_o law_n according_a to_o our_o saviour_n interpretation_n be_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o might_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o soul_n matth._n 22.37_o hence_o be_v those_o declare_v bless_v by_o the_o psalmist_n that_o seek_v god_n with_o their_o whole_a heart_n psal_n 119.2_o and_o by_o this_o rule_n be_v king_n david_n himself_o wont_v to_o manage_v his_o address_n with_o my_o whole_a heart_n have_v i_o seek_v thou_o say_v he_o to_o god_n psal_n 119._o 10._o and_o i_o entreat_v thy_o favour_n with_o my_o whole_a heart_n vers_n 58._o and_o he_o urge_v it_o as_o a_o argument_n why_o god_n shall_v hear_v he_o because_o he_o cry_v with_o his_o whole_a heart_n vers_n 145._o his_o mind_n be_v intent_n on_o and_o accompany_v his_o petition_n and_o his_o seriousness_n in_o this_o snatch_v away_o his_o soul_n whole_o to_o itself_o and_o the_o god_n to_o who_o he_o make_v his_o address_n so_o must_v we_o in_o our_o prayer_n to_o the_o supreme_a be_v diligent_o attend_v to_o what_o we_o desire_v and_o be_v first_o satisfy_v concern_v the_o matter_n and_o expression_n of_o our_o prayer_n our_o most_o earnest_a wish_n must_v accompany_v the_o word_n in_o which_o we_o present_v our_o petition_n unto_o god_n now_o this_o can_v possible_o be_v do_v unless_o 1._o we_o understand_v the_o phrase_n and_o word_n in_o which_o we_o utter_v the_o petition_n of_o our_o mind_n for_o how_o can_v we_o intend_v our_o soul_n and_o raise_v our_o affection_n suitable_a to_o the_o weight_n and_o urgency_n of_o our_o prayer_n when_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v what_o be_v offer_v by_o ourselves_o or_o any_o other_o in_o our_o behalf_n there_o must_v in_o prayer_n be_v a_o elevation_n of_o our_o mind_n accompany_v our_o petition_n and_o our_o soul_n must_v in_o a_o manner_n pass_v into_o our_o devotion_n that_o they_o may_v be_v total_o employ_v in_o this_o duty_n for_o the_o time_n we_o be_v about_o it_o without_o any_o divert_v reflection_n but_o this_o can_v never_o be_v when_o we_o have_v not_o previous_a apprehension_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o a_o sufficient_a perception_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o our_o petition_n nay_o and_z most_o common_o the_o very_a expression_n then_o use_v for_o the_o soul_n be_v otherwise_o employ_v in_o the_o invention_n of_o method_n and_o sense_n and_o strain_v also_o for_o word_n to_o express_v it_o or_o in_o pass_v judgement_n upon_o the_o invention_n of_o another_o who_o presume_v to_o utter_v the_o want_n of_o a_o congregation_n in_o a_o new_a dress_n and_o every_o time_n with_o variation_n of_o phrase_n all_o know_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n can_v exert_v but_o one_o act_n at_o the_o same_o instant_n nor_o consider_v any_o more_o than_o one_o thing_n at_o once_o how_o then_o can_v it_o judge_v and_o apprehend_v at_o the_o same_o time_n raise_v its_o affection_n proportionable_a to_o the_o petition_n and_o keep_v itself_o fix_v upon_o god_n in_o any_o tolerable_a measure_n it_o can_v therefore_o with_o equal_a pace_n accompany_v a_o prayer_n which_o it_o do_v not_o understand_v before_o it_o come_v to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o and_o true_o be_v this_o well_o and_o serious_o consider_v it_o will_v render_v prayer_n useless_a and_o insufficient_a that_o be_v either_o make_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n or_o in_o english_a phrase_n that_o be_v unpremeditated_a unintelligible_a or_o unknown_a before_o hand_n to_o those_o who_o be_v to_o join_v in_o the_o oblation_n so_o as_o to_o bind_v up_o their_o assent_n to_o the_o petition_n and_o to_o satisfy_v themselves_o that_o they_o pray_v with_o understanding_n as_o to_o any_o objection_n that_o may_v be_v make_v from_o man_n join_v in_o prayer_n which_o they_o never_o hear_v before_o as_o in_o the_o case_n when_o a_o stranger_n come_v to_o preach_v it_o may_v easy_o be_v answer_v that_o no_o man_n can_v assent_v to_o the_o whole_a with_o understanding_n unless_o he_o be_v a_o person_n of_o extraordinary_a apprehension_n or_o he_o that_o pray_v make_v more_o than_o common_a pause_n at_o the_o end_n of_o every_o period_n of_o a_o petition_n that_o all_o may_v have_v time_n to_o apprehend_v and_o judge_n and_o put_v up_o a_o earnest_a wish_n with_o it_o otherwise_o some_o period_n subsequent_a must_v needs_o pass_v before_o the_o antecedent_n have_v be_v consider_v unless_o it_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o have_v such_o a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o a_o man_n that_o whatever_o he_o say_v at_o such_o a_o time_n be_v gospel_n and_o whither_o this_o will_v carry_v we_o may_v be_v easy_o know_v since_o it_o be_v the_o direct_a road_n to_o rome_n for_o if_o we_o may_v implicit_o believe_v particular_a man_n without_o examination_n in_o case_n that_o be_v in_o our_o own_o power_n much_o more_o will_v they_o say_v may_v we_o believe_v the_o church_n but_o prayer_n indeed_o consist_v not_o in_o a_o voluble_a effusion_n of_o word_n and_o language_n but_o this_o must_v be_v attend_v with_o a_o suitable_a servour_n which_o can_v be_v without_o a_o dueintention_n of_o mind_n and_o this_o require_v a_o previous_a acquaintance_n with_o what_o be_v utter_v that_o the_o understanding_n may_v command_v and_o regulate_v the_o affection_n when_o the_o understanding_n be_v thus_o just_o inform_v beforehand_o we_o may_v be_v more_o zealous_a and_o earnest_a in_o raise_v our_o affection_n to_o a_o decent_a height_n and_o so_o six_o our_o intention_n upon_o the_o object_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o the_o weightiness_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o petition_v for_o that_o our_o soul_n will_v suffer_v some_o kind_n of_o transport_v and_o be_v swallow_v up_o whole_o in_o they_o have_v you_o not_o see_v a_o person_n who_o delight_v in_o music_n so_o ravish_v with_o the_o stroke_n make_v upon_o his_o viol_n and_o transport_v with_o those_o pleasant_a air_n that_o the_o intention_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o all_o his_o faculty_n have_v be_v so_o full_o employ_v that_o he_o have_v disregard_v all_o thing_n else_o as_o if_o his_o soul_n have_v suffer_v a_o transmigration_n and_o have_v whole_o pass_v into_o the_o instrument_n he_o play_v on_o thus_o shall_v it_o be_v as_o far_o as_o humane_a frailty_n will_v permit_v with_o man_n devout_o earnest_a in_o prayer_n we_o shall_v come_v to_o it_o with_o such_o preparation_n and_o seriousness_n of_o mind_n that_o know_v before_o what_o we_o design_v to_o petition_v heaven_n for_o we_o shall_v be_v intent_n like_o man_n beg_v for_o their_o life_n and_o every_o prayer_n be_v the_o last_o we_o shall_v make_v that_o so_o god_n see_v our_o fervour_n and_o devotion_n may_v be_v incline_v to_o hear_v and_o to_o have_v mercy_n for_o when_o at_o any_o time_n our_o mind_n wander_v in_o our_o prayer_n and_o do_v not_o accompany_v the_o word_n utter_v so_o much_o of_o the_o prayer_n be_v lose_v to_o we_o as_o be_v pass_v over_o whilst_o we_o permit_v the_o diversion_n and_o the_o only_a remedy_n by_o which_o we_o may_v interest_n ourselves_o in_o what_o be_v go_v be_v in_o my_o opinion_n to_o recollect_v the_o petition_n as_o well_o as_o we_o can_v which_o we_o may_v do_v where_o the_o usual_a form_n of_o the_o church_n be_v use_v and_o utter_v a_o hearty_a amen_o to_o they_o 2._o we_o must_v in_o the_o intend_v our_o mind_n in_o our_o solemn_a devotion_n fix_v our_o soul_n on_o the_o object_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v throughout_o the_o whole_a carry_v along_o whilst_o we_o utter_v our_o want_n some_o notion_n of_o that_o glorious_a be_v to_o who_o we_o make_v our_o religious_a address_n especial_o at_o the_o first_o entrance_n upon_o they_o that_o we_o
manifest_v to_o the_o world_n or_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n have_v lawful_o and_o by_o good_a consequence_n conclude_v to_o be_v most_o excellent_a and_o glorious_a in_o themselves_o he_o must_v be_v endow_v therefore_o with_o all_o knowledge_n power_n goodness_n impassibility_n justice_n truth_n mercy_n faithfulness_n and_o the_o like_a with_o self_n existency_n and_o eternity_n crown_v and_o add_v a_o ornament_n to_o the_o whole_a to_o this_o god_n then_o under_o such_o glorious_a notion_n adorn_v with_o such_o transcendent_a attribute_n and_o all_o possible_a perfection_n imaginable_a to_o this_o king_n eternal_a immortal_a invisible_a the_o only_a wise_a god_n we_o be_v to_o give_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n adore_v those_o attribut_n of_o which_o we_o be_v transcribe_v the_o copy_n as_o far_o as_o frail_a humane_a nature_n will_v permit_v and_o by_o which_o only_o we_o can_v declare_v his_o essence_n to_o this_o transcendent_a be_v we_o ought_v to_o pray_v without_o pretend_v to_o form_v a_o idea_n or_o similitude_n of_o his_o live_a substance_n which_o we_o can_v make_v any_o likeness_n of_o nor_o frame_v a_o due_a image_n of_o his_o be_v without_o notion_n attend_v that_o be_v unworthy_a of_o he_o and_o such_o accident_n as_o will_v be_v blemish_n and_o imperfection_n at_o once_o lead_v we_o into_o impiety_n and_o a_o snare_n and_o to_o such_o a_o be_v when_o we_o have_v once_o settle_v a_o notion_n of_o he_o before_o we_o enter_v upon_o our_o devotion_n to_o he_o we_o may_v address_v our_o lawful_a petition_n and_o direct_v all_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o mind_n without_o frame_v any_o similitude_n and_o worship_v he_o who_o be_v and_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n sustain_v the_o creation_n by_o his_o almighty_a power_n and_o influence_n the_o whole_a by_o his_o daily_a providence_n who_o as_o i_o believe_v can_v be_v draw_v otherwise_o by_o the_o most_o accurate_a judgement_n the_o most_o tower_a fancy_n or_o sublimest_n and_o most_o retire_a contemplation_n because_o he_o be_v invisible_a to_o this_o universal_a be_v who_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o parent_n of_o all_o other_o if_o we_o thus_o direct_v suitable_a petition_n we_o shall_v worship_v god_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n and_o the_o father_n seek_v such_o to_o worship_v he_o john_n 4._o 23._o and_o thus_o i_o have_v do_v with_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o address_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o mind_n i_o proceed_v now_o to_o the_o second_o particular_a to_o make_v inquiry_n into_o that_o manner_n in_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v with_o reference_n to_o the_o gesture_n of_o our_o body_n now_o this_o in_o general_a aught_o to_o be_v such_o as_o be_v most_o expressive_a of_o our_o humility_n reverence_n profound_a devotion_n and_o dependence_n on_o god_n and_o therefore_o such_o as_o be_v use_v to_o these_o end_n and_o purpose_n in_o the_o region_n and_o country_n in_o which_o we_o live_v for_o prayer_n testify_v our_o religion_n to_o other_o and_o by_o our_o outward_a example_n for_o they_o can_v know_v our_o inward_a thought_n draw_v they_o into_o the_o same_o act_n of_o devotion_n with_o ourselves_o as_o well_o as_o according_a to_o the_o expectation_n of_o our_o maker_n to_o raise_v and_o signify_v our_o own_o disposition_n and_o affection_n to_o he_o since_o therefore_o other_o man_n can_v no_o way_n be_v make_v sensible_a of_o the_o intention_n of_o our_o mind_n but_o by_o those_o representation_n which_o they_o receive_v from_o the_o external_a act_n and_o gesture_n of_o our_o body_n we_o ought_v to_o use_v such_o in_o prayer_n as_o may_v best_o signify_v those_o to_o they_o which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o those_o by_o which_o we_o represent_v both_o our_o humility_n and_o affection_n to_o those_o person_n with_o who_o we_o converse_v it_o be_v true_a indeed_o i_o can_v say_v that_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n have_v command_v any_o one_o gesture_n in_o prayer_n so_o strict_o as_o to_o exclude_v all_o other_o for_o in_o these_o thing_n a_o absolute_a necessity_n at_o any_o time_n become_v a_o reasonable_a dispensation_n a_o man_n may_v be_v enseeble_v in_o his_o limb_n lay_v stretch_v upon_o a_o bed_n of_o languish_v be_v move_v to_o ejaculation_n when_o he_o be_v employ_v in_o his_o trade_n or_o occupation_n he_o may_v be_v incline_v to_o pray_v when_o he_o be_v walk_v in_o the_o field_n or_o travel_v on_o a_o journey_n and_o may_v often_o be_v lift_v his_o thought_n to_o god_n when_o he_o be_v sit_v at_o his_o ordinary_a meal_n in_o such_o case_n and_o other_o like_v they_o he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o alter_v his_o posture_n but_o god_n will_v accept_v of_o his_o secret_a whisper_n or_o more_o outward_o express_v language_n nay_o the_o humble_a breathe_n and_o wish_n of_o his_o mind_n with_o or_o without_o the_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n and_o further_a yet_o sometime_o even_o in_o public_a assembly_n a_o man_n or_o woman_n may_v be_v in_o a_o crowd_n or_o his_o knee_n so_o benumb_v and_o his_o body_n weary_v with_o the_o length_n of_o his_o devotion_n that_o any_o one_o posture_n may_v be_v so_o uneasy_a and_o painful_a too_o as_o to_o blunt_v the_o sharpness_n of_o his_o affection_n and_o hinder_v the_o most_o acceptable_a intention_n of_o his_o mind_n and_o god_n forbid_v that_o the_o more_o noble_a part_n of_o our_o devotion_n shall_v be_v slacken_v or_o interrupt_v by_o the_o necessary_a attendance_n on_o the_o frailty_n and_o weakness_n of_o our_o own_o body_n for_o this_o will_v render_v they_o not_o only_o the_o restrain_v prison_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o their_o jailer_n too_o and_o certain_o he_o to_o who_o our_o prayer_n be_v direct_v be_v gracious_a and_o merciful_a will_v not_o enjoin_v any_o burden_n upon_o man_n who_o be_v humble_a and_o devout_a which_o neither_o they_o nor_o their_o forefather_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v i_o can_v therefore_o sufficient_o admire_v the_o piety_n and_o prudence_n of_o our_o own_o church_n who_o service_n be_v so_o admirable_o contrive_v that_o the_o frequent_a intermixture_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n reading_n and_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n with_o our_o prayer_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o sin_n give_v frequent_a relief_n to_o the_o age_a or_o weary_v body_n of_o man_n by_o enjoin_v suitable_a though_o uniform_a posture_n that_o by_o their_o variation_n become_v easy_a and_o delightsome_a and_o advance_v the_o fervour_n and_o affection_n of_o the_o mind_n but_o that_o i_o may_v not_o deviate_v from_o this_o duty_n of_o prayer_n we_o find_v goodman_n in_o sacred_a writ_n sometime_o worship_v by_o prostration_n on_o the_o ground_n sometime_o adore_v by_o bow_v their_o head_n and_o without_o doubt_n kiss_v their_o hand_n as_o the_o act_n of_o adore_v proper_o signify_v sometime_o stand_v upon_o their_o foot_n and_o sometime_o kneel_v upon_o their_o knee_n but_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o latter_a be_v more_o frequent_a though_o prostration_n be_v a_o posture_n more_o lowly_a than_o this_o when_o saint_n stephen_n have_v the_o honour_n to_o become_v the_o first_o martyr_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n next_o to_o himself_o and_o like_o his_o master_n signalise_v his_o charity_n in_o pray_v for_o his_o enemy_n the_o text_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o kneel_v down_o and_o pray_v cry_v out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n lord_n lay_v not_o this_o sin_n to_o their_o charge_n act._n 7.60_o when_o saint_n paul_n pray_v among_o the_o bishop_n at_o miletus_n he_o kneel_v down_o and_o pray_v with_o they_o all_o act_n 20.36_o when_o saint_n peter_n seal_v the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n by_o that_o eminent_a miracle_n of_o raise_v dorcas_n from_o the_o dead_a we_o be_v give_v to_o understand_v that_o he_o kneel_v down_o and_o pray_v act._n 9.40_o and_o the_o bless_a and_o holy_a jesus_n himself_o who_o be_v more_o worthy_a than_o all_o mankind_n because_o he_o be_v accept_v as_o a_o just_a and_o proportionable_a sacrifice_n for_o they_o and_o redeem_v those_o who_o be_v prisoner_n to_o death_n and_o hell_n yet_o that_o he_o may_v testify_v the_o great_a humility_n and_o submission_n of_o his_o mind_n do_v not_o only_o fall_v down_o upon_o his_o knee_n but_o prostrate_v himself_o with_o his_o face_n to_o the_o ground_n when_o with_o a_o reserve_a submission_n to_o his_o father_n will_n he_o pray_v say_v o_o father_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o matth._n 26.39_o when_o saint_n paul_n pray_v for_o the_o ephesian_n that_o they_o may_v not_o faint_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o tribulation_n he_o bow_v his_o knee_n to_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n eph._n 3_o 14._o and_o when_o in_o his_o voyage_n towards_o jerusalem_n he_o land_v at_o tyre_n at_o his_o departure_n from_o thence_o himself_o with_o the_o disciple_n their_o wife_n 〈◊〉_d
we_o find_v after_o a_o excursion_n of_o our_o thought_n that_o we_o be_v yet_o in_o the_o posture_n of_o prayer_n when_o otherwise_o we_o may_v by_o the_o inadvertency_n or_o diversion_n of_o our_o soul_n or_o a_o unusual_a heaviness_n and_o oppression_n in_o our_o body_n forget_v the_o duty_n which_o we_o be_v conversant_a about_o but_o especial_o in_o our_o public_a devotion_n the_o devout_a gesture_n of_o other_o about_o we_o mind_v we_o of_o what_o we_o shall_v do_v ourselves_o and_o we_o can_v remain_v cold_a and_o stupid_a when_o we_o see_v other_o express_v the_o affection_n and_o ardour_n of_o their_o mind_n by_o those_o action_n in_o which_o we_o common_o represent_v they_o when_o by_o the_o gesture_n of_o their_o body_n they_o seem_v to_o pour_v out_o their_o very_a soul_n in_o prayer_n how_o do_v we_o see_v the_o eye_n of_o man_n sparkle_v with_o zeal_n when_o void_a of_o all_o passion_n or_o hypocrifie_n how_o do_v humility_n and_o some_o man_n low_a conceit_n of_o themselves_o cause_v their_o body_n to_o stoop_v and_o their_o knee_n to_o bend_v how_o do_v faith_n and_o hope_n again_o lift_v up_o the_o most_o feeble_a hand_n at_o once_o to_o beg_v and_o receive_v god_n favour_n and_o such_o devout_a action_n if_o they_o be_v not_o hypocritical_a will_v raise_v and_o evidence_n our_o own_o affection_n however_o must_v certain_o inflame_v other_o to_o conclude_v this_o particular_a then_o i_o can_v but_o speak_v of_o the_o external_a gesture_n of_o our_o body_n and_o the_o inward_a intention_n and_o fervour_n of_o our_o mind_n what_o the_o poet_n say_v of_o castor_n and_o pollux_n that_o when_o they_o be_v only_o single_a they_o portend_v mischief_n and_o be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o a_o storm_n but_o when_o they_o appear_v both_o together_o they_o presage_v a_o fortunate_a passage_n to_o the_o church_n declare_v piety_n in_o who_o they_o shine_v and_o a_o solid_a and_o well_o ground_a devotion_n and_o thus_o i_o have_v do_v with_o the_o second_o particular_a refer_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o prayer_n which_o relate_v to_o the_o deportment_n and_o gesture_n of_o our_o body_n the_o three_o and_o last_o enquiry_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o prayer_n be_v to_o make_v a_o search_n into_o our_o word_n and_o expression_n and_o to_o determine_v what_o be_v fit_v to_o be_v do_v in_o this_o matter_n when_o we_o speak_v to_o so_o great_a and_o glorious_a a_o god_n especial_o in_o our_o joint_n and_o common_a petition_n there_o be_v not_o more_o frequent_a extravagancy_n among_o man_n expose_v to_o the_o cognisance_n of_o other_o than_o what_o usual_o proceed_v from_o the_o slip_n or_o design_v action_n of_o our_o tongue_n these_o be_v so_o nimble_a when_o the_o body_n become_v heat_v and_o chafe_v as_o if_o all_o our_o spirit_n fly_v thither_o that_o it_o be_v difficult_a for_o some_o warm_a constitution_n to_o afford_v they_o any_o rest_n at_o all_o they_o be_v so_o talkative_a when_o we_o be_v awake_v that_o they_o be_v tattle_v too_o whilst_o we_o be_v asleep_a therefore_o the_o skilful_a and_o prudent_a government_n of_o the_o tongue_n be_v the_o most_o difficult_a task_n of_o the_o empire_n within_o ourselves_o and_o needs_o the_o prescription_n of_o a_o multitude_n of_o law_n and_o a_o great_a and_o wary_a caution_n to_o be_v give_v we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v very_o vigilant_a to_o stop_v the_o sally_n of_o it_o that_o our_o word_n may_v be_v guide_v with_o discretion_n the_o tongue_n say_v st._n james_n be_v a_o little_a member_n but_o boast_v great_a thing_n and_o he_o compare_v it_o to_o fire_n a_o spark_n of_o which_o often_o turn_v city_n into_o ash_n such_o be_v this_o among_o our_o member_n that_o it_o defile_v the_o whole_a body_n and_o set_v on_o fire_n the_o course_n of_o nature_n when_o itself_o be_v kindle_v by_o the_o flame_n of_o hell_n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o man_n offend_v not_o in_o word_n say_v the_o apostle_n the_o same_o be_v a_o perfect_a man_n and_o able_a to_o bridle_v the_o whole_a body_n james_n 3.2_o 5_o 6._o now_o as_o this_o be_v so_o peccant_a in_o our_o conversation_n with_o man_n so_o be_v it_o apt_a to_o err_v in_o our_o converse_v with_o god_n when_o it_o assume_v too_o much_o familiarity_n with_o he_o become_v pert_a and_o rude_a in_o our_o prayer_n and_o devotion_n as_o some_o man_n who_o a_o prince_n honour_n with_o his_o daily_a converse_v be_v so_o sensible_o blow_v up_o with_o the_o reception_n of_o his_o breath_n that_o their_o former_a acquaintance_n must_v not_o know_v they_o so_o oftentimes_o they_o become_v saucy_a to_o he_o that_o have_v advance_v they_o and_o blow_v his_o breath_n back_o upon_o himself_o when_o they_o have_v first_o poison_v it_o in_o their_o own_o body_n and_o thus_o be_v it_o with_o many_o man_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o great_a god_n that_o make_v they_o utter_v such_o language_n in_o their_o address_n to_o he_o as_o will_v cause_v man_n to_o scorn_n and_o reject_v their_o petition_n and_o all_o for_o want_v of_o due_a consideration_n and_o impress_v themselves_o with_o a_o just_a awe_n from_o the_o distance_n and_o disproportion_n betwixt_o their_o maker_n and_o themselves_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o we_o be_v exhort_v to_o come_v with_o a_o humble_a boldness_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n since_o we_o have_v a_o acceptable_a person_n to_o intercede_v for_o we_o heb._n 4.16_o but_o who_o can_v think_v that_o such_o a_o text_n give_v encouragement_n to_o dust_n and_o ash_n to_o fly_v against_o the_o face_n of_o their_o great_a creator_n and_o advance_v their_o privilege_n into_o a_o confident_a rudeness_n rather_o sure_o the_o same_o apostle_n sober_a advice_n must_v give_v a_o check_n to_o extravagant_a presumption_n and_o cause_v we_o to_o serve_v god_n in_o a_o acceptable_a manner_n with_o profound_a reverence_n and_o a_o godly_a fear_n because_o he_o be_v a_o consume_a fire_n heb._n 12.28_o 29._o to_o manage_v therefore_o our_o prayer_n unto_o god_n in_o such_o language_n as_o may_v be_v suitable_a to_o our_o maker_n and_o ourselves_o we_o may_v take_v if_o we_o be_v willing_a these_o follow_a direction_n 1._o that_o our_o word_n must_v be_v plain_a and_o intelligible_a 2._o they_o ought_v to_o be_v grave_a and_o serious_a 3._o they_o must_v be_v expressive_a and_o full_a 4._o they_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o brief_a and_o short_a as_o may_v consist_v with_o perspicuity_n and_o therefore_o last_o they_o must_v be_v premeditate_v and_o fix_v first_o our_o word_n and_o expression_n in_o our_o solemn_a prayer_n must_v be_v plain_a and_o intelligible_a because_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v mind_v however_o be_v affect_v with_o that_o which_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v or_o if_o he_o be_v it_o be_v without_o reason_n and_o he_o do_v not_o act_n like_o a_o man_n we_o have_v indeed_o too_o melancholy_a and_o woeful_a experience_n of_o some_o that_o be_v take_v with_o musical_a stroke_n and_o any_o thing_n which_o make_v curious_a and_o grateful_a percussion_n upon_o their_o ear_n be_v extreme_o delight_v with_o such_o sound_n of_o word_n as_o be_v void_a of_o sense_n but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n if_o we_o think_v that_o the_o gratification_n of_o our_o sense_n become_v a_o reasonable_a service_n unto_o god_n prayer_n require_v that_o our_o apprehension_n and_o wish_n keep_v a_o parallel_n with_o our_o word_n in_o which_o we_o utter_v our_o want_n and_o necessity_n we_o may_v otherwise_o beg_v a_o serpent_n when_o we_o intend_v a_o fish_n and_o ask_v for_o a_o stone_n instead_o of_o bread_n if_o in_o public_a we_o understand_v not_o the_o language_n of_o he_o that_o offer_v service_n in_o our_o behalf_n he_o may_v curse_v we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o devil_n when_o we_o think_v he_o bless_v we_o in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n it_o can_v at_o the_o bare_a mention_n of_o it_o but_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o strange_a and_o ridiculous_a service_n when_o we_o offer_v to_o god_n we_o know_v not_o what_o and_o if_o we_o can_v trust_v any_o man_n with_o his_o bundle_n of_o infirmity_n in_o a_o business_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n as_o our_o prayer_n so_o as_o to_o leave_v he_o either_o to_o his_o quick_a or_o dull_a invention_n as_o his_o body_n or_o his_o mind_n be_v either_o vigorous_a or_o disturb_v so_o that_o we_o may_v with_o any_o tolerable_a knowledge_n or_o due_a consideration_n say_v amen_o to_o what_o be_v utter_v or_o compose_v for_o we_o by_o some_o man_n to_o be_v deliver_v by_o ourselves_o yet_o sure_o i_o be_o we_o can_v never_o proportion_v our_o affection_n or_o the_o intention_n of_o out_o mind_n suitable_a to_o those_o expression_n which_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v prayer_n especial_o what_o be_v public_a shall_v be_v a_o plain_a thing_n and_o word_v so_o as_o to_o be_v understand_v by_o all_o
that_o have_v be_v due_o educate_v in_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v strip_v of_o all_o the_o gaudy_a luxuriance_n of_o a_o orator_n not_o welt_a with_o metaphor_n nor_o darken_v by_o any_o figurative_a allusion_n but_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o naked_a as_o truth_n as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n and_o as_o plain_a and_o open_a as_o innocence_n itself_o this_o must_v not_o be_v speak_v like_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o oracle_n in_o word_n that_o may_v beguile_v and_o deceive_v the_o simple_a but_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o plain_a as_o the_o question_n of_o the_o inquirer_n be_v otherwise_o let_v the_o language_n be_v what_o it_o will_v it_o be_v but_o like_o a_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n amuse_v only_o but_o not_o edify_v the_o church_n nor_o can_v any_o person_n who_o do_v not_o apprehend_v it_o rational_o pronounce_v amen_n to_o it_o because_o he_o set_v his_o seal_n to_o a_o blank_a which_o man_n will_v not_o do_v in_o other_o case_n nay_o for_o all_o that_o he_o know_v to_o that_o which_o bind_v he_o to_o his_o own_o ruin_n and_o such_o prayer_n s._n paul_n both_o redargues_fw-la and_o condemn_v 1_o cor._n 14._o second_o our_o word_n in_o prayer_n must_v be_v grave_a and_o serious_a not_o intermix_v with_o the_o levities_n of_o a_o stage_n as_o if_o our_o word_n and_o action_n be_v to_o be_v theatrical_a in_o prayer_n and_o a_o man_n be_v to_o make_v a_o raree_o show_v in_o religion_n we_o must_v not_o turn_v our_o devotion_n into_o a_o cant_a burlesque_fw-la nor_o cause_v the_o weighty_a conception_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o be_v breathe_v forth_o in_o air_n and_o fancy_n as_o if_o we_o be_v court_v a_o mistress_n or_o a_o common_a hall_n but_o our_o prayer_n must_v be_v wise_a and_o grave_a the_o business_n of_o thought_n and_o careful_a premeditation_n and_o our_o word_n must_v be_v suit_v to_o the_o weight_n and_o grandeur_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o petition_n what_o a_o strange_a thing_n be_v it_o to_o hear_v a_o man_n beg_v by_o a_o romance_n and_o to_o adorn_v his_o rag_n with_o joques_fw-la or_o flower_n this_o better_a proclaim_v his_o madness_n than_o his_o want_n what_o a_o odd_a thing_n be_v it_o when_o a_o person_n come_v to_o beg_v a_o alm_n and_o yet_o rant_v a●_n and_o tear_n his_o benefactor_n who_o shall_v be_v stow_v it_o this_o may_v be_v expect_v at_o bethlem_n only_o but_o not_o in_o a_o church_n certain_o therefore_o it_o must_v startle_v and_o amaze_v we_o to_o see_v and_o hear_v bold_a man_n thu●_n act_v towards_o god_n almighty_a himself_o to_o find_v person_n rave_v in_o their_o prayer●_n as_o if_o they_o will_v hector_n the_o gre●●_n maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o sca●●_n he_o into_o a_o compliance_n with_o their_o ●_z by_o a_o loud_a noise_n bold_a word_n 〈◊〉_d too_o confident_a importunity_n woul●_n make_v a_o rational_a and_o wise_a man_n wo●der_n where_o they_o have_v learn_v the_o trade_n or_o to_o hear_v a_o man_n ridiculous_o groan_v and_o yelp_a out_o his_o prayer_n in_o tone_n unbecoming_a solemnity_n make_v grimace_n and_o wry_a face_n as_o he_o have_v the_o gripe_n in_o his_o belly_n 〈◊〉_d will_v think_v he_o walk_v the_o field_n o●ten_o and_o have_v take_v note_n from_o the_o very_a cripple_n nay_o to_o a_o strange_a that_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v both_o it_o will_v admit_v of_o some_o consideration_n to_o guess_v which_o be_v the_o inventor_n of_o the_o faculty_n and_o he_o will_v conclude_v both_o to_o be_v artificial_a but_o neither_o to_o be_v fit_v in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n almighty_n nay_o though_o we_o pray_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o promise_n and_o jesus_n christ_n have_v die_v for_o we_o yet_o to_o urge_v god_n gracious_a and_o free_a promise_n in_o such_o dare_a and_o strange_a language_n as_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v his_o kindness_n to_o make_v they_o or_o our_o obedience_n be_v so_o complete_a that_o he_o can_v not_o suspend_v the_o favour_n that_o we_o petition_n for_o destroy_v that_o free_a grace_n which_o at_o other_o time_n we_o magnify_v and_o extol_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o to_o leave_v ourselves_o little_a or_o no_o duty_n to_o perform_v as_o if_o god_n must_v present_o be_v unjust_a to_o we_o if_o he_o do_v not_o when_o we_o please_v answer_v our_o petition_n and_o give_v we_o our_o reward_n strange_a that_o man_n in_o their_o address_n unto_o god_n shall_v no_o better_o consider_v their_o distance_n and_o dependence_n but_o assume_v to_o themselves_o such_o familiarity_n with_o their_o maker_n as_o if_o they_o be_v either_o his_o equal_n or_o superior_n thus_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o glory_n that_o they_o may_v the_o better_a cloth_n themselves_o with_o shame_n but_o shall_v the_o potsherd_n fly_v at_o the_o potter_n head_n or_o dust_n and_o ash_n endeavour_v to_o cloud_n and_o obscure_a heaven_n shall_v we_o do_v thus_o who_o be_v form_v out_o of_o the_o clay_n who_o one_o word_n from_o he_o to_o who_o we_o thus_o rude_o address_v can_v sentence_v to_o a_o everlasting_a silence_n and_o make_v the_o shade_n below_o our_o habitation_n nay_o shall_v he_o that_o can_v cast_v our_o body_n into_o a_o grave_n and_o our_o soul_n into_o most_o horrid_a darkness_n in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n and_o both_o at_o last_o into_o everlasting_a burn_n who_o have_v the_o disposal_n of_o all_o the_o blessing_n and_o misery_n of_o this_o life_n and_o the_o eternal_a reward_n and_o punishment_n of_o the_o next_o shall_v he_o be_v address_v to_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o if_o we_o be_v his_o familiar_a acquaintance_n certain_o the_o most_o high_a and_o lofty_a one_o the_o great_a god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v not_o so_o small_a and_o inconsiderable_a a_o thing_n as_o some_o man_n prayer_n seem_v to_o make_v he_o let_v we_o hear_v himself_o argue_v with_o such_o rude_a and_o careless_a man_n mal._n 1.6_o a_o son_n say_v he_o honour_v his_o father_n and_o a_o servant_n his_o master_n if_o i_o be_v then_o a_o father_n where_o be_v my_o honour_n and_o if_o i_o be_v a_o master_n where_o be_v my_o fear_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n unto_o you_o o_o priest_n that_o despise_v my_o name_n and_o yet_o say_v wherein_o have_v we_o despise_v it_o the_o psalmist_n give_v excellent_a advice_n in_o such_o a_o case_n as_o this_o serve_v the_o lord_n with_o fear_n nay_o our_o very_a rejoice_v must_v be_v with_o reverence_n psal_n 2.11_o and_o if_o the_o great_a king_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o who_o david_n there_o speak_v must_v thus_o perform_v their_o duty_n and_o service_n to_o he_o who_o be_v high_o than_o the_o high_a much_o more_o ought_v those_o who_o be_v of_o a_o mean_a allay_n to_o be_v admonish_v not_o to_o be_v malepert_a with_o their_o maker_n lest_o instead_o of_o favour_n they_o receive_v vengeance_n and_o he_o give_v no_o other_o answer_n to_o their_o prayer_n but_o a_o speech_n of_o hailstone_n and_o coal_n of_o fire_n let_v man_n therefore_o use_v such_o expression_n in_o their_o address_n to_o god_n as_o may_v evidence_n some_o dread_a and_o awe_n upon_o their_o mind_n and_o declare_v such_o humility_n and_o reverence_n as_o become_v those_o that_o draw_v nigh_o to_o god_n saint_n paul_n justify_v himself_o to_o the_o ephesian_a bishop_n by_o his_o deportment_n among_o they_o at_o all_o season_n but_o more_o especial_o in_o that_o he_o have_v serve_v the_o lord_n with_o all_o humility_n of_o mind_n which_o they_o can_v not_o otherways_o discern_v but_o by_o the_o outward_a agreement_n of_o his_o word_n and_o action_n act._n 20.19_o and_o since_o our_o word_n in_o prayer_n be_v only_o to_o express_v our_o inward_a sentiment_n the_o thought_n and_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v as_o requisite_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v grave_a and_o serious_a as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v modest_a and_o humble_a and_o as_o necessary_a too_o as_o that_o our_o mind_n shall_v be_v qualify_v and_o adorn_v with_o such_o virtue_n when_o we_o come_v to_o speak_v or_o present_v ourselves_o before_o the_o great_a majesty_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n nay_o one_o be_v so_o natural_a a_o sign_n of_o the_o other_o that_o when_o gravity_n and_o humility_n be_v plant_v in_o the_o soul_n they_o will_v sprout_v forth_o and_o spread_v their_o branch_n in_o the_o word_n of_o man_n mouth_n and_o deportment_n of_o their_o body_n so_o that_o where_o these_o last_o thing_n be_v want_v we_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o suspect_v nay_o conclude_v the_o profession_n or_o affirmation_n that_o man_n have_v the_o other_o to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o shame_n and_o a_o pretence_n three_o our_o word_n in_o prayer_n must_v be_v expressive_a and_o full_a because_o otherwise_o they_o answer_v not_o the_o end_n for_o which_o
they_o be_v utter_v for_o since_o all_o our_o expression_n in_o prayer_n be_v not_o only_o to_o raise_v our_o devotion_n suitable_a to_o the_o conception_n of_o our_o mind_n but_o they_o be_v also_o design_v to_o signify_v the_o wish_n and_o desire_n of_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v reasonable_a that_o both_o shall_v run_v parallel_n and_o our_o expression_n equal_v our_o want_n and_o necessity_n or_o else_o our_o language_n can_v answer_v the_o design_n of_o utter_v word_n in_o prayer_n i_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o sometime_o the_o inward_a conception_n of_o man_n in_o private_a may_v be_v too_o big_a for_o their_o mouth_n to_o express_v and_o there_o a_o sigh_n or_o a_o groan_n may_v prevail_v with_o god_n for_o what_o the_o tongue_n be_v not_o able_a full_o to_o utter_v there_o as_o the_o reverend_n dr._n owen_n more_o clear_o express_v it_o they_o may_v mourn_v as_o a_o dove_n or_o chatter_v as_o a_o crane_n and_o he_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a in_o that_o condition_n but_o in_o public_a prayer_n when_o one_o become_v the_o orator_n for_o the_o rest_n petition_n ought_v to_o be_v frame_v so_o as_o to_o express_v the_o general_a want_n of_o those_o that_o be_v present_a as_o christian_n unite_v into_o one_o body_n be_v member_n in_o particular_a of_o that_o society_n of_o which_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o head_n that_o all_o may_v be_v concern_v in_o such_o common_a request_n and_o join_v together_o with_o one_o heart_n and_o with_o one_o soul_n and_o with_o undivided_a affection_n say_v amen_o at_o the_o close_a and_o period_n but_o yet_o four_o our_o word_n in_o prayer_n must_v be_v as_o few_o and_o our_o petition_n as_o brief_a as_o may_v consist_v with_o plainness_n and_o perspicuity_n not_o only_o because_o what_o be_v over_o and_o beyond_o this_o seem_v redundant_fw-la and_o to_o no_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o unreasonable_a nor_o only_a because_o a_o tedious_a protraction_n and_o unnecessary_a length_n in_o devotion_n dull_v the_o spirit_n and_o make_v our_o affection_n unactive_a and_o stupid_a it_o quench_v the_o fervour_n and_o intention_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o turn_n much_o of_o our_o prayer_n all_o whilst_o we_o remain_v thus_o indispose_v into_o mere_a babble_n and_o effusion_n of_o word_n when_o our_o mind_n can_v accompany_v our_o expression_n or_o the_o language_n of_o another_o utter_v in_o our_o behalf_n but_o as_o we_o have_v no_o example_n of_o a_o tedious_a and_o long_a prayer_n in_o the_o scripture_n so_o have_v we_o prohibition_n and_o argument_n against_o it_o solomon_n exhort_v to_o external_a sign_n of_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n when_o man_n go_v to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n be_v not_o rash_a with_o thy_o mouth_n say_v he_o and_o let_v not_o thy_o heart_n be_v hasty_a to_o utter_v any_o thing_n before_o god_n for_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o thou_o on_o earth_n therefore_o let_v thy_o word_n be_v few_o ecclesiast_fw-la 5.1_o 2._o and_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v unreasonable_o restrain_v this_o text_n only_o to_o the_o subsequent_a vow_n yet_o the_o argument_n urge_v why_o man_n shall_v be_v then_o spare_v of_o their_o word_n will_v as_o well_o conclude_v in_o prayer_n as_o in_o vow_n in_o both_o which_o thing_n we_o speak_v to_o such_o a_o god_n as_o be_v in_o heaven_n whilst_o we_o stand_v at_o a_o distance_n on_o the_o earth_n our_o saviour_n advice_n in_o his_o sermon_n on_o the_o mount_n be_v when_o thou_o pray_v use_v not_o vain_a repetition_n as_o the_o heathen_a do_v for_o they_o think_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v hear_v for_o their_o much_o speak_n and_o he_o present_o give_v his_o own_o disciple_n the_o form_n of_o a_o full_a and_o most_o expressive_a prayer_n mat._n 6_o 7._o nay_o if_o we_o will_v be_v incline_v by_o his_o own_o example_n which_o any_o will_v think_v that_o christian_n ought_v even_o then_o when_o by_o the_o circumstance_n he_o be_v in_o a_o enemy_n to_o his_o religion_n will_v conclude_v he_o to_o be_v devout_a be_v fill_v with_o pain_n and_o fear_n of_o far_a torture_n that_o attend_v he_o when_o he_o be_v in_o a_o agony_n so_o great_a that_o his_o sweat_n be_v as_o it_o be_v large_a glutinous_a drop_n of_o blood_n when_o as_o s._n matthew_n say_v his_o soul_n be_v sorrowful_a even_o unto_o death_n and_o s._n luke_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o pray_v more_o earnest_o even_o than_o we_o find_v his_o word_n to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o these_o father_n if_o thou_o be_v willing_a remove_v this_o cup_n from_o i_o nevertheless_o not_o my_o will_n but_o thou_o be_v do_v luke_o 22.42_o nor_o do_v the_o earnestness_n of_o his_o strong_a desire_n force_v his_o thought_n to_o break_v out_o into_o a_o flood_n of_o expression_n but_o allow_v himself_o some_o small_a interval_n continue_v his_o devotion_n he_o return_v to_o his_o prayer_n repeat_v again_o the_o same_o word_n matth._n 26.44_o but_o i_o shall_v speak_v more_o of_o these_o text_n hereafter_o to_o proceed_v therefore_o to_o show_v that_o brevity_n be_v a_o ornament_n to_o our_o prayer_n the_o very_a nature_n and_o usual_a custom_n of_o petition_n will_v bring_v a_o sufficient_a convince_a testimony_n to_o all_o those_o who_o have_v not_o very_o odd_a conception_n of_o the_o object_n to_o who_o they_o make_v religious_a address_n these_o by_o the_o reason_n of_o man_n be_v then_o judge_v to_o be_v best_a draw_v when_o they_o include_v brevity_n and_o fullness_n of_o matter_n and_o the_o short_a do_v we_o usual_o frame_v they_o by_o how_o much_o the_o great_a the_o person_n be_v to_o who_o they_o be_v to_o be_v present_v and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o may_v possible_o be_v not_o only_o because_o the_o serious_a affair_n of_o great_a man_n that_o be_v in_o public_a employment_n will_v not_o permit_v much_o diversion_n but_o for_o that_o they_o be_v presume_v to_o be_v wise_a and_o discern_a able_a to_o understand_v quick_a than_o those_o who_o be_v place_v in_o a_o more_o vulgar_a station_n a_o breviate_v may_v be_v sufficient_a to_o inform_v some_o man_n when_o other_o must_v be_v large_o instruct_v from_o point_n to_o point_n and_o must_v have_v thing_n various_o diversify_v and_o often_o reiterated_a before_o they_o will_v suit_v with_o their_o apprehension_n and_o shall_v we_o think_v the_o omniscient_a god_n who_o know_v our_o want_n before_o we_o petition_v to_o be_v less_o intelligent_a or_o compassionate_a than_o man_n that_o he_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o so_o many_o word_n and_o variety_n of_o expression_n to_o cause_v he_o to_o understand_v or_o to_o incline_v he_o to_o grant_v what_o be_v convenient_a for_o we_o but_o this_o will_v be_v treat_v of_o in_o a_o large_a manner_n in_o the_o inference_n from_o the_o whole_a discourse_n and_o therefore_o this_o head_n shall_v be_v conclude_v with_o a_o brief_a answer_n to_o one_o plea_n which_o may_v be_v make_v for_o a_o long_a continue_a prayer_n the_o objection_n be_v that_o our_o saviour_n be_v engage_v all_o night_n in_o prayer_n luke_o 6.12_o and_o some_o other_o expression_n and_o example_n too_o we_o have_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o may_v import_v and_o signify_v some_o length_n in_o prayer_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v they_o and_o be_v either_o upon_o extraordinary_a occasion_n or_o so_o circumstantiate_v that_o they_o differ_v exceed_o from_o our_o present_a state_n and_o can_v be_v a_o pattern_n unto_o we_o or_o else_o when_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n continue_v long_o in_o prayer_n by_o give_v themselves_o short_a respite_n and_o allow_v some_o interval_n between_o they_o return_v to_o the_o same_o prayer_n again_o which_o may_v be_v short_a enough_o for_o all_o the_o objection_n yet_o when_o we_o have_v the_o same_o spirit_n and_o measure_n of_o assistance_n with_o such_o authority_n and_o revelation_n as_o the_o have_v and_o fall_v under_o their_o circumstance_n which_o can_v never_o be_v their_o extraordinary_a practice_n may_v become_v a_o copy_n for_o our_o imitation_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n since_o it_o be_v most_o suitable_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o prayer_n with_o reference_n to_o god_n a_o agreeable_a to_o our_o natural_a and_o unavoidable_a infirmity_n and_o that_o infinite_a distance_n betwixt_o our_o maker_n and_o ourselves_o it_o be_v fit_v that_o our_o prayer_n shall_v be_v as_o brief_a and_o short_a as_o may_v consist_v with_o plainness_n and_o perspicuity_n and_o therefore_o last_o upon_o the_o view_n of_o all_o this_o it_o be_v convenient_a and_z for_o the_o most_o part_n necessary_a too_o that_o both_o the_o matter_n and_o expression_n of_o our_o prayer_n shall_v be_v fix_v and_o premeditate_a for_o if_o our_o word_n in_o prayer_n ought_v to_o be_v plain_a and_o intelligible_a if_o they_o must_v be_v both_o grave_n and_o serious_a if_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v full_a in_o the_o expression_n of_o our_o want_n and_o if_o they_o must_v be_v as_o brief_a and_o short_a
as_o may_v consist_v with_o perspicuity_n how_o can_v it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o quick_a man_n subject_a to_o many_o infirmity_n in_o their_o body_n that_o must_v and_o will_v many_o time_n cloud_n their_o mind_n shall_v upon_o a_o sudden_a without_o a_o previous_a and_o exact_a consideration_n word_n their_o own_o and_o the_o common_a desire_n of_o other_o man_n according_a to_o the_o order_n and_o method_n and_o importance_n of_o thing_n unless_o they_o have_v before_o hand_n invent_v digest_v and_o reduce_v both_o their_o matter_n and_o expression_n into_o a_o well_o study_v and_o set_v form_n of_o prayer_n he_o that_o adventure_n to_o pray_v extempore_o in_o a_o public_a audience_n be_v so_o selfish_a in_o the_o matter_n of_o his_o petition_n and_o oftentimes_o so_o ridiculous_a in_o the_o expression_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a all_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o say_v amen_o to_o several_a thing_n petition_v for_o if_o they_o at_o all_o use_n their_o understanding_n and_o do_v not_o implicit_o join_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o gift_a person_n but_o you_o will_v find_v more_o of_o this_o in_o a_o place_n of_o this_o discourse_n more_o particular_o reserve_v for_o it_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o matter_n and_o word_n may_v present_v themselves_o on_o a_o sudden_a for_o private_a and_o more_o brief_a ejaculation_n or_o intermix_v themselves_o in_o our_o single_a devotion_n beyond_o the_o form_n which_o we_o may_v general_o use_v either_o through_o the_o great_a enlargement_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o affection_n or_o upon_o sudden_a and_o unexpected_a necessity_n or_o by_o recollect_v in_o our_o memory_n something_o that_o be_v either_o before_o omit_v or_o our_o form_n do_v not_o direct_o enough_o or_o in_o particular_n express_v but_o in_o public_a where_o petition_n ought_v to_o be_v so_o general_a that_o all_o present_a may_v say_v amen_o and_o by_o this_o signify_v their_o assent_n and_o wish_n it_o be_v not_o only_o convenient_a but_o necessary_a too_o that_o man_n shall_v have_v some_o time_n to_o judge_v and_o be_v acquaint_v with_o what_o be_v deliver_v in_o their_o behalf_n before_o they_o give_v their_o assent_n to_o it_o otherwise_o they_o pray_v not_o with_o judgement_n and_o understanding_n which_o ought_v to_o go_v before_o and_o lead_v their_o affection_n and_o not_o permit_v the_o passion_n to_o sally_v forth_o without_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o in_o the_o way_n now_o i_o can_v see_v how_o this_o can_v possible_o be_v do_v without_o a_o form_n which_o those_o that_o join_v in_o may_v be_v acquaint_v with_o however_o methinks_v to_o we_o christian_n there_o be_v several_a argument_n to_o be_v take_v from_o universal_a pratice_fw-la in_o former_a age_n and_o reason_n also_o from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o determine_v we_o in_o this_o affair_n and_o to_o recommend_v this_o method_n of_o address_v ourselves_o to_o almighty_a god_n first_o the_o antiquity_n of_o public_a form_n of_o prayer_n and_o benediction_n wherein_o also_o prayer_n be_v include_v be_v so_o evident_a that_o both_o jew_n and_o christian_n have_v agree_v in_o this_o notwithstanding_o the_o introduction_n of_o the_o one_o religion_n supersede_v and_o evacuate_v the_o other_o under_o the_o law_n we_o find_v the_o prescription_n of_o a_o form_n by_o god_n himself_o wherewith_o the_o priest_n be_v to_o bless_v the_o people_n by_o invocate_a and_o wish_v that_o god_n blessing_n may_v descend_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o be_v the_o authoritative_a instrument_n in_o this_o method_n to_o convey_v it_o to_o they_o numb_a 6._o 22_o 23_o etc._n etc._n nay_o there_o be_v a_o form_n of_o prayer_n make_v and_o prescribe_v by_o the_o same_o god_n for_o those_o to_o rehearse_v who_o have_v pay_v their_o tithe_n every_o three_o year_n as_o any_o one_o may_v see_v both_o the_o form_n and_o the_o command_n to_o use_v it_o deut._n 26._o from_o v._o 12._o onward_o what_o be_v the_o book_n of_o the_o psalm_n of_o david_n but_o a_o form_n of_o confession_n petition_n and_o thanksgiving_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n deliver_v to_o the_o levite_n in_o the_o several_a quire_n according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n when_o they_o sing_v together_o by_o course_n in_o praise_v and_o give_v thanks_o unto_o the_o lord_n because_o he_o be_v good_a for_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o ezra_n 3.10_o 11._o nay_o and_o what_o seem_v to_o i_o matter_n of_o wonder_n these_o very_a psalm_n translate_v into_o english_a metre_n be_v yet_o sing_v in_o those_o dissent_v congregation_n who_o refuse_v otherwise_o to_o pray_v to_o god_n by_o a_o form_n but_o to_o leave_v the_o form_n prescribe_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o according_o practise_v because_o according_a to_o some_o man_n of_o quick_a invention_n and_o volubility_n of_o language_n they_o be_v a_o carnal_a and_o a_o heavy_a people_n to_o be_v lead_v on_o in_o a_o dull_a and_o formal_a way_n yet_o unless_o the_o opposer_n of_o form_n of_o prayer_n will_v be_v too_o nimble_a for_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o account_v they_o dull_a and_o carnal_a we_o shall_v find_v form_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n not_o only_o compose_v but_o enjoin_v too_o none_o sure_o can_v be_v unacquainted_a that_o our_o saviour_n teach_v his_o disciple_n to_o pray_v and_o give_v they_o a_o form_n not_o only_o for_o imitation_n but_o for_o use_v man_n do_v not_o i_o hope_v so_o learn_v christ_n it_o be_v true_a s._n matthew_n deliver_v the_o command_n after_o this_o manner_n therefore_o pay_v you_o mat._n 6.9_o yet_o s._n luke_n record_v the_o same_o prayer_n when_o in_o another_o year_n and_o on_o another_o occasion_n our_o saviour_n deliver_v it_o give_v we_o the_o account_n of_o our_o lord_n prescription_n in_o these_o word_n when_o you_o pray_v say_v our_o father_n etc._n etc._n luke_o 11.1_o yet_o this_o difference_n can_v only_o infer_v these_o two_o thing_n 1._o that_o in_o all_o our_o composure_n of_o prayer_n in_o which_o we_o enlarge_v the_o word_n of_o our_o petition_n suitable_a to_o the_o enlargement_n of_o our_o mind_n we_o shall_v have_v regard_n and_o bear_v some_o proportion_n to_o this_o pattern_n which_o christ_n himself_o have_v give_v for_o our_o direction_n and_o 2._o that_o we_o shall_v use_v also_o the_o word_n themselves_o in_o which_o our_o saviour_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o pray_v supply_v the_o imperfection_n of_o our_o own_o invention_n by_o the_o fullness_n of_o that_o prayer_n which_o he_o have_v prescribe_v for_o all_o true_a christian_n to_o use_v and_o such_o a_o method_n we_o find_v follow_v by_o the_o church_n till_o the_o vanity_n of_o some_o man_n who_o think_v themselves_o wise_a and_o they_o may_v be_v account_v more_o fanciful_a than_o the_o age_a design_v to_o suit_n their_o expression_n and_o tone_n to_o captivate_v the_o affection_n and_o passion_n of_o the_o multitude_n for_o end_n at_o first_o best_o know_v to_o themselves_o but_o since_o with_o a_o vengeance_n declare_v to_o other_o though_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o offer_v unto_o god_n fancy_n for_o devotion_n and_o out_o of_o their_o pretend_a wisdom_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n and_o i_o pray_v god_n there_o be_v no_o knavery_n in_o it_o that_o be_v also_o intend_v to_o the_o people_n second_o i_o argue_v for_o form_n of_o prayer_n to_o be_v use_v in_o public_a because_o the_o minister_n than_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v to_o utter_v all_o by_o their_o consent_n and_o to_o pray_v in_o their_o name_n testify_v their_o unity_n of_o affection_n by_o their_o consent_n in_o prayer_n and_o this_o so_o prevail_v with_o the_o great_a god_n of_o infinite_a goodness_n that_o if_o but_o two_o shall_v agree_v together_o on_o earth_n as_o touch_v any_o thing_n that_o they_o shall_v ask_v it_o shall_v be_v do_v for_o they_o by_o the_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n matth._n 18.19_o unity_n of_o affection_n and_o consent_n in_o prayer_n be_v that_o which_o render_v our_o public_a devotion_n so_o acceptable_a to_o god_n this_o give_v they_o strength_n and_o virtue_n cause_v our_o prayer_n to_o ascend_v as_o incense_v and_o the_o lift_n up_o of_o our_o hand_n to_o be_v as_o a_o evening_n sacrifice_n now_o there_o can_v in_o my_o opinion_n be_v this_o consent_n and_o unity_n of_o affection_n in_o prayer_n but_o where_o there_o be_v a_o uniformity_n in_o call_v upon_o god_n that_o all_o let_v they_o come_v whence_o they_o will_v into_o any_o public_a place_n of_o devotion_n where_o a_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v to_o offer_v their_o joint_a prayer_n to_o god_n if_o they_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o and_o frequent_v the_o church_n be_v before_o acquaint_v with_o the_o service_n and_o prayer_n which_o all_o there_o make_v to_o god_n they_o may_v unite_v themselves_o immediate_o to_o
they_o and_o say_v amen_o to_o testify_v their_o consent_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v pass_v over_o before_o they_o come_v be_v moral_o assure_v from_o the_o continual_a custom_n and_o use_n there_o especial_o the_o minister_n be_v pre-engaged_n both_o by_o a_o oath_n and_o severe_a penalty_n attend_v the_o violation_n to_o use_v no_o other_o form_n of_o worship_n than_o what_o be_v prescribe_v in_o the_o common_a rubric_n and_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n i_o say_v if_o any_o of_o the_o prayer_n be_v pass_v over_o by_o unite_n in_o the_o rest_n with_o a_o easy_a recollection_n of_o what_o have_v be_v already_o utter_v a_o man_n be_v acquaint_v with_o it_o by_o common_a use_n may_v at_o least_o better_a than_o by_o any_o other_o method_n impossible_a to_o be_v do_v in_o extemporary_a effusion_n join_v himself_o to_o the_o congregation_n and_o obtain_v some_o interest_n in_o the_o whole_a service_n and_o especial_o if_o under_o these_o circumstance_n he_o be_v hearty_o intent_n in_o the_o prayer_n of_o s._n chrysostom_n and_o some_o other_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o our_o worship_n and_o yet_o pray_v with_o some_o good_a understanding_n though_o it_o can_v be_v so_o well_o as_o if_o he_o have_v consent_v from_o part_n to_o part_n with_o all_o and_o he_o may_v not_o depart_v without_o a_o blessing_n if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o wilful_a omission_n and_o neglect_v but_o only_o a_o mistake_n of_o time_n and_o a_o misfortune_n but_o if_o this_o reason_n will_v not_o prevail_v yet_o three_o i_o argue_v the_o lawfulness_n and_o expedience_n of_o form_n of_o prayer_n from_o the_o great_a example_n of_o christ_n himself_o and_o certain_o christian_n ought_v not_o to_o think_v that_o they_o can_v imitate_v a_o better_a for_o we_o find_v he_o in_o his_o agony_n in_o the_o garden_n when_o his_o soul_n be_v sorrowful_a even_o unto_o death_n and_o multiply_v misery_n oppress_v and_o torture_v he_o to_o use_v only_o this_o short_a prayer_n o_o my_o father_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a let_v this_o cup_n pass_v from_o i_o nevertheless_o not_o as_o i_o will_v but_o as_o thou_o will_v matth._n 26.39_o and_o when_o upon_o the_o same_o occasion_n he_o return_v again_o to_o his_o devotion_n we_o read_v that_o he_o use_v the_o same_o prayer_n and_o the_o evangelist_n have_v very_o little_o alter_v the_o phrase_n which_o yet_o our_o saviour_n seem_v not_o to_o change_v at_o all_o for_o when_o be_v inform_v we_o that_o he_o pray_v the_o three_o time_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o use_v the_o same_o word_n matth._n 26.44_o however_o if_o this_o instance_n may_v miscarry_v as_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o it_o shall_v yet_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o when_o he_o be_v torture_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o in_o the_o height_n of_o his_o passion_n invocate_v god_n his_o word_n be_v a_o form_n long_o before_o use_v by_o david_n and_o it_o be_v a_o part_n if_o not_o the_o whole_a of_o the_o 22._o psalm_n my_o god_n my_o god_n why_o have_v thou_o forsake_v i_o four_o i_o argue_v for_o let_v form_n of_o prayer_n from_o the_o practice_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n and_o his_o disciple_n who_o probable_o borrow_v it_o as_o mr_n mede_n in_o his_o diatribae_fw-la hint_n from_o a_o custom_n among_o the_o doctor_n of_o israel_n to_o deliver_v some_o certain_a form_n of_o prayer_n to_o their_o disciple_n as_o a_o badge_n and_o symbol_n of_o their_o discipleship_n however_o it_o fare_v with_o this_o notion_n yet_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o baptist_n himself_o who_o the_o scripture_n say_v be_v more_o than_o a_o prophet_n do_v prescribe_v some_o form_n of_o prayer_n for_o his_o follower_n to_o use_v though_o we_o find_v not_o upon_o record_n what_o it_o be_v yet_o probable_o it_o may_v be_v a_o prayer_n near_o the_o sense_n and_o expression_n of_o that_o of_o our_o lord_n for_o his_o form_n as_o to_o word_n and_o phrase_n be_v before_o in_o the_o jewish_a form_n a_o little_a vary_v and_o therefore_o grotius_n infer_v that_o the_o great_a lord_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v very_o far_o from_o all_o affectation_n of_o any_o novelty_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a but_o to_o let_v these_o thing_n pass_v the_o scripture_n itself_o plain_o inform_v we_o that_o john_n the_o baptist_n do_v give_v his_o disciple_n a_o form_n by_o which_o he_o teach_v they_o to_o pray_v for_o when_o our_o saviour_n have_v as_o the_o text_n declare_v in_o a_o certain_a place_n end_v his_o own_o prayer_n one_o of_o his_o disciple_n petition_v he_o to_o teach_v they_o to_o pray_v as_o john_n also_o teach_v his_o disciple_n and_o our_o saviour_n present_o without_o any_o other_o intervening_a discourse_n reply_v in_o answer_n to_o his_o desire_n when_o you_o pray_v say_v our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n luk._n 11.1_o 2._o so_o that_o either_o christ_n be_v not_o a_o form_n although_o it_o be_v command_v to_o be_v use_v which_o no_o man_n of_o sense_n can_v say_v or_o our_o saviour_n elude_v the_o request_n of_o his_o disciple_n in_o answer_v only_o a_o part_n of_o it_o but_o not_o the_o whole_a which_o no_o christian_n will_v be_v bold_a to_o affirm_v or_o if_o he_o do_v at_o that_o time_n teach_v his_o own_o disciple_n to_o pray_v as_o or_o in_o that_o manner_n as_o john_n also_o teach_v he_o than_o it_o must_v be_v necessary_o infer_v that_o john_n the_o baptist_n prescribe_v a_o form_n for_o his_o follower_n to_o pray_v by_o five_o there_o be_v no_o inconvenience_n but_o great_a advantage_n in_o a_o study_a and_o set_v form_n of_o prayer_n when_o extemporary_a and_o unpremeditated_a devotion_n utter_v in_o present_a and_o sudden_a language_n can_v neither_o evade_v the_o one_o nor_o be_v the_o instrument_n of_o the_o other_o study_a form_n of_o prayer_n may_v be_v consider_v often_o and_o receive_v the_o censure_n and_o correction_n of_o many_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n before_o they_o be_v expose_v to_o common_a judgement_n and_o they_o that_o be_v to_o join_v in_o they_o upon_o view_n of_o they_o before_o hand_n may_v be_v able_a to_o suit_v their_o affection_n and_o the_o intention_n of_o their_o mind_n both_o to_o the_o matter_n and_o also_o the_o expression_n which_o in_o extemporary_a prayer_n they_o can_v do_v but_o must_v on_o a_o sudden_a be_v bind_v up_o to_o the_o matter_n word_n and_o expression_n of_o another_o that_o i_o may_v not_o say_v to_o the_o break_a sense_n extravagant_a phrase_n dark_a metaphor_n frequent_a interruption_n or_o bodily_a infirmity_n distract_n often_o another_o man_n or_o to_o the_o effect_n of_o those_o fear_n or_o inadvertency_n that_o may_v often_o attend_v a_o man_n bewilder_v through_o worldly_a care_n or_o disturb_v with_o the_o thought_n and_o trouble_n of_o his_o mind_n form_n of_o prayer_n study_v and_o review_v be_v not_o subject_a to_o such_o impertinency_n tautology_n and_o vain_a repetition_n that_o too_o sudden_a effusion_n frequent_o produce_v when_o there_o be_v a_o defect_n in_o the_o invention_n of_o matter_n fluency_n of_o language_n or_o apt_a word_n to_o express_v the_o petition_n man_n be_v willing_a to_o present_v nay_o the_o most_o ignorant_a and_o illiterate_a may_v by_o the_o frequent_a audience_n of_o public_a set_a form_n of_o prayer_n and_o quicken_a their_o memory_n by_o the_o due_a intention_n and_o affection_n of_o their_o mind_n when_o these_o be_v devout_o and_o distinct_o pronounce_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o a_o congregation_n or_o the_o master_n of_o a_o family_n fix_v and_o remember_v some_o thing_n and_o expression_n for_o their_o more_o private_a and_o single_a use_n and_o at_o last_o be_v able_a to_o express_v their_o supplication_n to_o god_n for_o the_o private_a relief_n of_o their_o necessity_n and_o in_o this_o the_o public_a language_n of_o the_o church_n when_o no_o such_o thing_n can_v possible_o be_v accomplish_v by_o hear_v the_o same_o matter_n various_o phrased_a and_o such_o expression_n as_o be_v alter_v and_o diversify_v in_o respect_n of_o order_n and_o position_n of_o word_n and_o intermix_v with_o new_a fancy_n and_o obscurity_n and_o frequent_a jumbling_n and_o interposition_n of_o confession_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o word_n that_o declare_v the_o excellency_n of_o god_n provoke_v man_n to_o act_n of_o adoration_n or_o rapture_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o what_o methodical_o shall_v be_v prayer_n and_o petition_n so_o that_o they_o who_o possess_v the_o room_n of_o the_o unlearned_a if_o they_o be_v able_a with_o due_a judgement_n and_o affection_n to_o keep_v pace_n with_o he_o who_o in_o this_o way_n can_v invent_v and_o utter_v prayer_n with_o neither_o yet_o they_o can_v no_o more_o carry_v away_o what_o may_v assist_v they_o in_o their_o private_a retirement_n than_o the_o gift_a man_n be_v able_a afterward_o to_o remember_v and_o repeat_v his_o own_o prayer_n for_o in_o these_o sudden_a and_o
upremeditated_a effusion_n of_o man_n in_o their_o prayer_n unto_o god_n their_o invention_n so_o vary_v the_o phrase_n and_o transpose_v the_o matter_n that_o when_o all_o be_v the_o same_o yet_o they_o be_v so_o different_o place_v between_o antecedent_n and_o consequent_n that_o they_o be_v frequent_o alter_v till_o they_o become_v obscure_a and_o be_v so_o cloud_v either_o with_o fog_n or_o dust_n that_o a_o consider_v man_n of_o part_n and_o memory_n be_v not_o able_a to_o find_v either_o out_o when_o they_o be_v bury_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o rubbish_n and_o how_o shall_v another_o search_v out_o that_o which_o he_o that_o hide_v it_o can_v find_v sixthly_a if_o form_n of_o prayer_n in_o public_a devotion_n be_v either_o inconvenient_a or_o unlawful_a then_o they_o must_v be_v so_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o person_n that_o utter_v they_o or_o else_o to_o those_o who_o be_v concern_v in_o join_v with_o and_o consent_v to_o they_o 1._o if_o they_o be_v inconvenient_a or_o unlawful_a to_o the_o minister_n only_o why_o shall_v the_o people_n trouble_v themselves_o or_o any_o man_n startle_v they_o about_o it_o unless_o man_n think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o glory_n to_o they_o to_o disturb_v the_o mind_n and_o religion_n of_o the_o devout_a raise_v cloud_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o honour_n to_o dispel_v they_o bring_v scruple_n and_o pain_n into_o man_n conscience_n that_o casuistical_a divinity_n may_v come_v the_o more_o into_o fashion_n and_o they_o like_o quack_n may_v sit_v grave_o in_o their_o chair_n to_o scry_v water_n and_o resolve_v doubt_n and_o take_v fee_n of_o their_o wander_a patient_n this_o be_v plain_a force_n of_o a_o trade_n and_o make_v man_n sick_a that_o they_o may_v cure_v the_o disease_n or_o rather_o live_v by_o the_o continuance_n of_o it_o for_o why_o shall_v the_o people_n perplex_v their_o mind_n about_o that_o in_o which_o only_a the_o minister_n be_v concern_v let_v every_o man_n bear_v his_o own_o burden_n and_o in_o this_o case_n relate_v to_o public_a worship_n we_o be_v willing_a and_o choose_v to_o bear_v we_o for_o the_o son_n shall_v not_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o father_n nor_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o righteous_a shall_v be_v upon_o he_o and_o the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o wicked_a shall_v be_v upon_o he_o ezek._n 18.20_o yet_o certain_o he_o who_o have_v due_o consider_v that_o intention_n of_o mind_n which_o be_v to_o accompany_v the_o matter_n and_o expression_n of_o our_o prayer_n will_v not_o charge_v a_o minister_n with_o a_o fault_n because_o he_o can_v effect_v that_o which_o be_v impossible_a to_o mind_v three_o or_o four_o thing_n at_o the_o same_o instant_n invent_v matter_n and_o word_n to_o express_v it_o at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o which_o he_o must_v reflect_v upon_o what_o he_o have_v invent_v before_o he_o can_v understand_v it_o himself_o and_o raise_v his_o affection_n and_o desire_n in_o proportion_n to_o what_o he_o utter_v when_o he_o pray_v and_o direct_v his_o intention_n to_o the_o great_a god_n to_o who_o he_o address_v or_o else_o those_o that_o be_v so_o much_o for_o these_o extemporary_a effusion_n must_v conclude_v that_o the_o minister_n need_v not_o pray_v himself_o whilst_o he_o be_v busy_a in_o invent_v matter_n and_o word_n for_o other_o but_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o he_o teach_v other_o to_o be_v devout_a when_o he_o himself_o have_v no_o devotion_n at_o all_o and_o that_o his_o business_n in_o the_o congregation_n be_v to_o make_v prayer_n for_o other_o not_o for_o himself_o 2._o if_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n be_v either_o inconvenient_a or_o unlawful_a to_o the_o people_n than_o indeed_o all_o the_o former_a reason_n be_v ineffectual_a and_o more_o will_v be_v so_o which_o be_v yet_o behind_o but_o than_o whoever_o assert_v this_o as_o none_o but_o a_o mad_a man_n will_v without_o limitation_n do_v i_o have_v this_o farther_z in_o this_o place_n to_o urge_v against_o he_o that_o there_o must_v be_v no_o public_a prayer_n at_o all_o for_o all_o prayer_n be_v either_o utter_v in_o word_n that_o be_v premeditate_v or_o conceive_v before_o and_o this_o on_o all_o hand_n will_v be_v yield_v to_o be_v a_o form_n or_o else_o it_o must_v be_v deliver_v in_o such_o language_n promote_v by_o what_o help_v soever_o as_o he_o that_o pronounce_v it_o do_v not_o think_v of_o before_o he_o be_v call_v to_o utter_v it_o which_o they_o that_o affect_v it_o call_v either_o pray_v extempore_o or_o by_o the_o spirit_n but_o whatever_o of_o this_o nature_n be_v utter_v by_o a_o minister_n in_o a_o public_a congregation_n will_n howsoever_o be_v a_o set_a form_n to_o the_o people_n for_o both_o matter_n and_o word_n must_v be_v frame_v and_o fix_v by_o the_o minister_n invention_n and_o pronounce_v too_o before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o people_n ear_n they_o must_v understand_v and_o consider_v they_o before_o they_o can_v rational_o consent_v to_o the_o petition_n and_o with_o earnest_a wish_n say_v amen_o and_o consequent_o whatever_o it_o be_v to_o the_o minister_n which_o though_o i_o have_v the_o faculty_n i_o can_v know_v unless_o i_o be_v a_o enthusiast_n reason_n and_o antiquity_n be_v whole_o exclude_v by_o a_o late_a writer_n in_o this_o case_n it_o must_v be_v all_o one_o to_o the_o people_n whether_o the_o prayer_n be_v premeditate_v or_o extempore_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v they_o who_o manage_v this_o controversy_n on_o that_o side_n opposite_a to_o our_o church_n turn_v their_o dark_a part_n to_o we_o as_o the_o moon_n do_v before_o a_o change_n and_o like_o the_o little_a fox_n that_o spoil_v our_o vine_n whilst_o the_o grape_n yet_o hang_v tender_a upon_o the_o branch_n be_v so_o hard_o hunt_v in_o this_o matter_n that_o after_o they_o have_v run_v out_o at_o length_n several_a mile_n from_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v first_o unkennele_v they_o be_v fain_o to_o take_v shelter_n in_o the_o wood_n march_v upon_o dead_a or_o quickset_n hedge_n and_o at_o last_o will_v have_v no_o refuge_n but_o to_o earth_n themselves_o when_o the_o darkness_n of_o the_o night_n hinder_v their_o be_v dig_v out_o again_o however_o if_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o well_o watch_v and_o observe_v these_o person_n we_o may_v find_v they_o out_o by_o the_o light_n of_o the_o morning_n when_o they_o thump_v and_o dig_v to_o make_v their_o way_n through_o and_o for_o the_o great_a part_n though_o some_o be_v of_o a_o more_o quick_a and_o crafty_a invention_n if_o we_o well_o observe_v the_o frequent_a prayer_n of_o any_o one_o man_n pretend_v this_o gift_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o to_o be_v either_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o nimble_a nature_n quick_a invention_n with_o volubility_n of_o language_n pronounce_v with_o a_o endear_n tone_n in_o scripture_n phrase_n cant_v to_o the_o people_n or_o else_o a_o art_n of_o express_v himself_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o memory_n or_o frequent_a use_n most_o ready_o and_o sometime_o though_o not_o always_o prudent_o in_o phrase_n and_o sentence_n diversify_v and_o transpose_v according_a to_o the_o various_a position_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o to_o be_v a_o faculty_n only_o of_o amuse_v but_o not_o edify_v the_o people_n make_v grateful_a percussion_n on_o their_o ear_n and_o screw_v up_o their_o affection_n by_o turn_v round_o the_o wheel_n and_o all_o to_o be_v but_o mechanical_a clockwork_n or_o a_o jack_n to_o roast_v meat_n for_o their_o own_o belly_n for_o how_o often_o have_v we_o hear_v these_o gift_a man_n pretend_v to_o pray_v in_o a_o unpremeditated_a method_n or_o none_o at_o all_o as_o the_o fruit_n of_o a_o sudden_a and_o quick_a invention_n whilst_o they_o be_v willing_a it_o shall_v be_v believe_v that_o all_o even_o their_o very_a matter_n and_o word_n be_v dart_v into_o they_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o all_o may_v be_v shoot_v back_o to_o heaven_n yet_o upon_o wise_a recollection_n by_o memory_n and_o observation_n we_o have_v conclude_v that_o their_o nimble_a effusion_n have_v consist_v of_o many_o piece_n of_o set_a form_n jumble_v together_o like_o epicurus_n atom_n by_o a_o fortuitous_a concourse_n or_o at_o least_o of_o many_o preconceive_a sentence_n express_v the_o matter_n of_o former_a petition_n in_o a_o new_a dress_n diversify_v by_o art_n vary_a and_o fix_v in_o divers_a place_n as_o they_o present_v themselves_o to_o the_o memory_n or_o the_o fancy_n so_o that_o this_o be_v often_o like_o the_o change_n of_o bell_n and_o may_v be_v manage_v by_o the_o same_o art_n four_o will_v make_v four_o and_o twenty_o and_o upon_o five_o they_o may_v ring_v six_o score_n i_o shall_v leave_v this_o therefore_o at_o present_a as_o a_o point_n that_o deserve_v no_o far_a consideration_n among_o any_o religious_a man_n that_o be_v think_v and_o wise_a but_o shall_v
that_o knock_v it_o shall_v be_v open_v matth._n 7.7_o 8._o furthermore_o he_o confirm_v this_o by_o the_o addition_n of_o a_o promise_n to_o use_v his_o utmost_a interest_n in_o it_o and_o his_o mediatory_a authority_n to_o bestow_v what_o we_o lawful_o pray_v for_o and_o certain_o in_o this_o state_n of_o christianity_n we_o may_v full_o depend_v upon_o his_o intercession_n and_o ability_n because_o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o he_o both_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n see_v therefore_o what_o he_o engage_v for_o john_n 14.13_o 14._o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v in_o my_o name_n that_o will_v i_o do_v and_o double_v the_o promise_n for_o the_o great_a assurance_n to_o his_o disciple_n nay_o not_o only_o so_o but_o repeat_v it_o with_o a_o double_a asseveration_n very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v ask_v the_o father_n in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v give_v it_o you_o joh._n 16.23_o 24_o and_o 27._o our_o saviour_n be_v so_o careful_a to_o prevent_v or_o scatter_v all_o those_o fear_n that_o like_o a_o cloud_n hang_v over_o his_o disciple_n head_n upon_o the_o apprehension_n they_o may_v have_v of_o his_o departure_n from_o they_o that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o promise_v to_o send_v the_o comforter_n to_o they_o but_o assure_v they_o upon_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n that_o when_o in_o any_o strait_n and_o exigency_n of_o affair_n they_o shall_v through_o he_o make_v their_o address_n unto_o god_n they_o shall_v have_v ready_a audience_n and_o a_o quick_a return_n make_v to_o their_o prayer_n and_o therefore_o he_o bid_v they_o ask_v and_o they_o shall_v receive_v that_o their_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a and_o give_v a_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o encourage_v they_o to_o petition_n and_o embolden_v their_o faith_n and_o hope_n in_o their_o prayer_n because_o the_o father_n himself_o have_v a_o great_a kindness_n for_o all_o those_o who_o evidence_n their_o affection_n to_o the_o son_n of_o his_o bosom_n and_o the_o delight_n of_o his_o soul_n so_o that_o soon_o shall_v the_o earth_n be_v dissolve_v and_o the_o heaven_n melt_v than_o such_o promise_n so_o powerful_o confirm_v fail_v of_o their_o accomplishment_n nor_o can_v any_o man_n possible_o distrust_v they_o when_o he_o be_v himself_o that_o conclude_v god_n to_o be_v faithful_a and_o immutable_a and_o do_v not_o think_v our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o great_a impostor_n in_o the_o world_n 2._o god_n have_v hear_v man_n prayer_n for_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o have_v ask_v even_o when_o he_o have_v seem_v to_o have_v determine_v beforehand_o what_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o end_n of_o their_o petition_n and_o therefore_o although_o he_o know_v our_o want_n before_o we_o utter_v and_o make_v they_o public_a by_o open_a address_n yet_o as_o his_o command_n for_o prayer_n and_o promise_n of_o audience_n take_v off_o that_o objection_n so_o if_o his_o determination_n have_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la be_v alter_v upon_o man_n devout_a prayer_n and_o humble_a supplication_n it_o do_v not_o only_o prove_v some_o decree_n conditional_a but_o sufficient_o baffle_v all_o discouragement_n to_o prayer_n which_o we_o may_v receive_v from_o any_o uncouth_a and_o absurd_a doctrine_n of_o man_n concern_v absolute_a and_o irrespective_a determination_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o being_n here_o on_o earth_n which_o in_o their_o consequence_n render_v prayer_n useless_a and_o justify_v what_o they_o call_v persecution_n since_o in_o my_o opinion_n they_o shall_v follow_v or_o at_o least_o submit_v to_o providence_n if_o they_o state_n it_o right_o as_o well_o in_o what_o the_o vulgar_a call_n misfortune_n as_o they_o pretend_v to_o do_v in_o their_o glory_n and_o in_o their_o triumph_n but_o though_o god_n providence_n be_v over_o all_o his_o work_n and_o like_o a_o wise_a governor_n he_o superintend_v the_o world_n yet_o since_o secret_a thing_n belong_v unto_o he_o and_o only_o reveal_v to_o we_o and_o to_o our_o child_n his_o apparent_a command_n be_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n for_o our_o practice_n and_o not_o his_o obscure_a and_o hide_a decree_n which_o mystical_a and_o pretend_v person_n who_o confident_o assume_v the_o monopoly_n of_o dream_n will_v fain_o have_v authority_n to_o soothsay_v upon_o that_o they_o may_v not_o appear_v to_o be_v ignorant_a in_o that_o which_o no_o man_n can_v know_v and_o yet_o these_o will_v willing_o when_o it_o may_v be_v propitious_a to_o their_o design_n resolve_v all_o their_o villainy_n into_o they_o but_o what_o a_o strange_a confusion_n will_v be_v introduce_v into_o the_o world_n although_o sincerity_n do_v attend_v opinion_n if_o subject_n shall_v proportion_v their_o action_n of_o life_n according_a to_o the_o uncertain_a conjecture_n they_o have_v of_o the_o intentention_n and_o design_n of_o their_o prince_n and_o not_o guide_v themselves_o by_o his_o know_a law_n the_o law_n will_v then_o no_o long_o be_v his_o but_o their_o own_o and_o upon_o a_o uncertain_a though_o frightful_a prevision_n they_o will_v rebel_v either_o by_o nature_n or_o instinct_n and_o wipe_v their_o mouth_n whilst_o they_o grave_o make_v providence_n their_o leader_n such_o will_v our_o deportment_n be_v towards_o god_n shall_v we_o measure_v our_o duty_n by_o god_n decree_n which_o we_o can_v never_o know_v and_o leave_v his_o write_a law_n manifest_v in_o his_o word_n by_o which_o he_o have_v declare_v his_o will_n to_o man_n and_o certain_o man_n who_o make_v providence_n to_o be_v their_o conductor_n in_o these_o affair_n though_o they_o have_v be_v in_o earnest_n yet_o now_o be_v but_o in_o jest_n with_o we_o since_o it_o seem_v but_o to_o serve_v their_o turn_n at_o such_o a_o time_n in_o which_o they_o say_v they_o groan_v under_o and_o cry_v out_o on_o persecution_n from_o those_o who_o have_v gain_v the_o whip_n hand_n exercise_v it_o very_o gentle_o upon_o they_o nor_o will_v i_o have_v it_o be_v it_o in_o my_o power_n too_o severe_a upon_o the_o back_n of_o any_o nor_o any_o way_n intolerable_a on_o the_o master_n of_o assembly_n and_o true_o i_o know_v not_o but_o it_o may_v be_v bear_v with_o a_o little_a patience_n though_o they_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o take_v country_n air_n to_o preserve_v their_o own_o health_n when_o they_o make_v other_o sick_a in_o the_o town_n by_o stay_v but_o however_o it_o fare_v with_o particular_a contriver_n that_o follow_v providence_n whilst_o it_o comport_v with_o their_o own_o interest_n yet_o certain_o whatever_o may_v be_v the_o mystical_a conclusion_n of_o any_o enthusiastical_a man_n who_o fancy_n may_v blow_v they_o up_o to_o the_o conceit_n and_o for_o aught_o some_o other_o know_v to_o the_o very_a sense_n of_o a_o inspiration_n providence_n which_o be_v always_o dark_a and_o full_a of_o riddle_n be_v never_o design_v as_o a_o rule_n to_o man_n life_n because_o from_o this_o be_v frequent_o deduce_v opposite_a and_o quite_o contrary_a conclusion_n alas_o man_n who_o when_o blow_v up_o like_o a_o bladder_n be_v no_o more_o though_o when_o break_v they_o may_v make_v a_o loud_a crack_n can_v see_v through_o the_o cloud_n of_o heaven_n nor_o discern_v the_o council_n of_o the_o adorable_a trinity_n nor_o read_v the_o decree_n or_o record_v above_o that_o according_o they_o may_v act_v here_o on_o earth_n mortal_a man_n in_o this_o variable_a state_n below_o be_v to_o confine_v themselves_o to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n and_o if_o any_o speak_v not_o according_a to_o this_o word_n whatever_o illumination_n they_o may_v pretend_v it_o be_v because_o there_o be_v no_o light_n within_o they_o isai_n 8.20_o and_o very_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n to_o doubt_v if_o our_o maker_n be_v a_o god_n of_o truth_n and_o design_v not_o to_o impose_v upon_o the_o world_n but_o that_o i_o may_v affirm_v without_o any_o dangerous_a opposition_n that_o his_o secret_a will_n do_v not_o contradict_v his_o reveal_v notwithstanding_o the_o boldness_n and_o impiety_n of_o the_o distinction_n as_o it_o be_v make_v use_n of_o in_o god_n deal_v with_o man_n or_o as_o the_o symbol_n and_o infallible_a test_n of_o one_o party_n renounce_v all_o symbolical_a ceremony_n have_v thus_o too_o large_o prefaced_a that_o which_o i_o promise_v to_o prove_v which_o i_o strive_v to_o check_v my_o pen_n in_o but_o my_o understanding_n will_v dictate_v to_o my_o will_n and_o both_o must_v unavoidable_o guide_v my_o hand_n i_o come_v now_o to_o give_v some_o instance_n where_o prayer_n have_v prevail_v with_o god_n to_o grant_v petition_n when_o yet_o he_o have_v seem_v to_o have_v determine_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o they_o and_o i_o shall_v not_o fetch_v too_o large_a a_o compass_n but_o name_v a_o few_o the_o first_o shall_v be_v the_o case_n of_o the_o israelite_n when_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o moses_n on_o the_o mount_n beyond_o their_o expectation_n they_o have_v cause_v a_o melt_a
calf_n to_o be_v make_v and_o have_v offer_v burn_v and_o peace-offering_n before_o it_o and_o devote_v this_o profane_a institution_n of_o they_o by_o a_o solemn_a festival_n god_n be_v so_o image_v at_o this_o abomination_n that_o he_o do_v not_o only_o abhor_v the_o service_n but_o declare_v in_o wrath_n that_o they_o have_v corrupt_v themselves_o and_o that_o they_o be_v a_o stiff-necked_a people_n nay_o he_o forbid_v moses_n to_o intercede_v for_o they_o that_o he_o may_v render_v they_o as_o great_a a_o example_n of_o his_o fury_n as_o he_o have_v before_o of_o his_o mercy_n and_o his_o miracle_n now_o therefore_o let_v i_o alone_o say_v god_n to_o moses_n that_o my_o wrath_n may_v wax_v hot_a against_o they_o and_o that_o i_o may_v consume_v they_o and_o yet_o upon_o the_o intercession_n of_o moses_n the_o text_n declare_v that_o the_o lord_n repent_v he_o of_o the_o evil_n which_o he_o think_v to_o do_v unto_o his_o people_n exod._n 32.14_o again_o when_o they_o be_v discontent_v and_o murmur_v at_o the_o report_n make_v to_o they_o of_o the_o promise_a land_n and_o for_o these_o signal_n of_o their_o disobedience_n the_o great_a god_n threaten_v to_o smite_v they_o with_o the_o pestilence_n and_o to_o disinherit_v they_o of_o that_o favour_n and_o land_n together_o which_o he_o have_v before_o give_v they_o a_o title_n to_o yet_o upon_o moses_n intercession_n and_o prayer_n in_o their_o behalf_n when_o he_o beseech_v god_n to_o pardon_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o people_n according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o mercy_n he_o return_v to_o he_o this_o gracious_a answer_n i_o have_v pardon_v according_a to_o thy_o word_n numb_a 14.20_o and_o indeed_o to_o give_v those_o frequent_a instance_n of_o this_o people_n obtain_v mercy_n by_o prayer_n even_o when_o god_n have_v declare_v his_o determination_n to_o punish_v will_v be_v to_o follow_v they_o from_o their_o cradle_n to_o their_o grave_n for_o as_o he_o love_v israel_n when_o it_o be_v a_o child_n so_o his_o affection_n continue_v as_o they_o grow_v up_o and_o his_o mercy_n follow_v they_o to_o their_o old_a age_n and_o though_o their_o sinful_a obstinacy_n when_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o recovery_n leave_v after_o various_a method_n in_o which_o their_o safety_n be_v attempt_v cause_v god_n to_o abate_v his_o favour_n by_o degree_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o total_o withdraw_v till_o he_o be_v force_v to_o lay_v his_o axe_n to_o the_o root_n of_o the_o tree_n and_o to_o cut_v it_o down_o for_o cumbr_v the_o ground_n to_o cause_v a_o calamitous_a dispersion_n of_o they_o and_o put_v a_o final_a period_n to_o their_o state_n and_o government_n so_o that_o to_o instance_n in_o all_o their_o deliverance_n and_o frequent_a preservation_n obtain_v by_o prayer_n will_v be_v to_o write_v a_o history_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o transcribe_v almost_o all_o their_o annal_n they_o sin_v very_o often_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o miracle_n and_o yet_o upon_o their_o repentance_n and_o prayer_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o often_o pardon_v they_o and_o he_o revoke_v his_o sentence_n even_o when_o it_o be_v pass_v and_o go_v forth_o against_o they_o so_o that_o this_o people_n be_v not_o a_o great_a and_o more_o last_a monument_n of_o his_o vast_a and_o incomprehensible_a power_n than_o they_o be_v example_n of_o his_o forbearance_n and_o long_o suffer_v be_v render_v object_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n and_o as_o large_a a_o instance_n of_o the_o prevalency_n of_o prayer_n as_o they_o be_v of_o his_o protection_n and_o compassion_n but_o a_o second_o example_n and_o proof_n too_o of_o god_n be_v prevail_v upon_o by_o prayer_n to_o revoke_v a_o sentence_n when_o it_o be_v decree_v and_o publish_v shall_v be_v a_o instance_n in_o hezechiah_n 2_o king_n 20_o chap._n when_o this_o king_n be_v sick_a and_o god_n have_v send_v the_o prophet_n isaiah_n to_o he_o to_o declare_v that_o startle_a and_o fatal_a sentence_n set_v thy_o house_n in_o order_n for_o thou_o shall_v die_v and_o not_o live_v he_o present_o turn_v himself_o to_o the_o wall_n and_o mix_v tear_n with_o his_o affectionate_a prayer_n beseech_v god_n to_o revoke_v his_o decree_n and_o rescind_v his_o resolution_n and_o such_o be_v the_o prevalence_n of_o his_o sincere_a desire_n that_o his_o petition_n be_v not_o only_o hear_v but_o answer_v too_o his_o tear_n be_v not_o those_o of_o a_o hypocritical_a crocodile_n weep_v over_o a_o prey_n which_o he_o intend_v to_o devour_v be_v quick_o wipe_v off_o from_o his_o cheek_n and_o a_o grant_n from_o heaven_n beyond_o any_o reasonable_a expectation_n exchange_v his_o mourning_n for_o joy_n and_o gladness_n and_o add_v fifteen_o year_n to_o his_o life_n and_o in_o order_n to_o his_o enjoyment_n of_o they_o he_o be_v direct_v from_o above_o to_o the_o use_n of_o those_o thing_n here_o below_o that_o may_v infallible_o when_o god_n himself_o be_v please_v to_o assist_v be_v the_o mean_n of_o his_o cure_n and_o to_o comfort_v he_o in_o the_o interval_n he_o give_v he_o a_o miraculous_a sign_n of_o the_o accomplishment_n that_o he_o may_v have_v some_o present_a ease_n and_o satisfaction_n the_o last_o instance_n to_o prove_v this_o point_n which_o now_o have_v fall_v under_o consideration_n shall_v be_v that_o of_o nin_n ve●_n for_o when_o god_n have_v pronounce_v his_o sentence_n against_o that_o people_n and_o command_v jonah_n the_o prophet_n to_o proclaim_v it_o which_o denunciation_n be_v very_o precise_a that_o at_o the_o end_n of_o forty_o day_n niniveh_n shall_v be_v destroy_v yet_o as_o soon_o as_o there_o be_v a_o fast_o proclaim_v and_o the_o citizen_n have_v clothe_v themselves_o with_o sackcloth_n as_o a_o public_a testimony_n and_o significant_a ceremony_n of_o their_o guilt_n and_o sorrow_n and_o resolution_n of_o amendment_n and_o cry_v mighty_o unto_o god_n in_o prayer_n attend_v by_o a_o solemn_a repentance_n the_o text_n declare_v that_o he_o see_v their_o work_n and_o repent_v of_o the_o evil_n which_o he_o say_v he_o will_v do_v unto_o they_o and_o do_v it_o not_o jonah_n 3.10_o and_o till_o these_o and_o such_o like_a example_n be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o sacred_a record_n we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o forbear_v our_o prayer_n upon_o any_o notion_n of_o god_n decree_n or_o from_o any_o sceptical_a or_o perverse_a conclusion_n which_o any_o of_o the_o high_a slown_n wit_n of_o man_n may_v draw_v from_o a_o unalterable_a providence_n the_o particular_a path_n of_o which_o be_v past_o our_o find_v out_o because_o be_v not_o sufficient_o declare_v to_o we_o they_o be_v like_o the_o secret_n of_o prince_n keep_v private_o without_o which_o confusion_n will_v present_o mix_v with_o their_o government_n and_o lock_v up_o in_o a_o close_a cabinet_n and_o therefore_o we_o can_v draw_v conclusion_n when_o we_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o premise_n from_o whence_o our_o inference_n shall_v be_v make_v providence_n will_v certain_o be_v too_o obscure_a unless_o that_o which_o be_v steady_a and_o universal_a uniform_a and_o in_o all_o revolution_n still_o the_o same_o for_o we_o to_o draw_v certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n from_o to_o conduct_v we_o in_o the_o duty_n and_o affair_n of_o this_o life_n and_o yet_o we_o may_v and_o aught_o too_o after_o the_o act_n of_o providence_n be_v render_v visible_a to_o make_v some_o reflection_n as_o it_o relate_v to_o ourselves_o though_o we_o ought_v to_o be_v extreme_o cautious_a how_o we_o pass_v censure_n upon_o other_o from_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n providence_n towards_o they_o because_o if_o we_o be_v too_o bold_a in_o that_o we_o do_v not_o only_o give_v too_o great_a a_o evidence_n of_o a_o very_a partial_a and_o ill_a nature_n but_o we_o shall_v often_o acquit_v the_o guilty_a whilst_o we_o pass_v sentence_n upon_o the_o innocent_a and_o condemn_v the_o generation_n of_o god_n child_n it_o may_v be_v lawful_a in_o the_o general_n to_o read_v our_o sin_n by_o our_o own_o particular_a temporal_a punishment_n nay_o the_o kind_n of_o sin_n we_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o which_o have_v provoke_v god_n to_o be_v severe_a against_o we_o when_o the_o sin_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o misery_n which_o be_v the_o consequent_a of_o it_o but_o this_o can_v be_v manage_v by_o every_o man_n because_o it_o require_v a_o large_a observation_n great_a and_o deep_a thoughtfulness_n of_o heart_n attend_v with_o very_a much_o caution_n and_o prudence_n yet_o when_o any_o dismal_a or_o adverse_a affliction_n happen_v to_o betide_v we_o we_o can_v offend_v but_o we_o must_v be_v industrious_a in_o search_v out_o our_o way_n and_o turn_v to_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n and_o it_o ought_v to_o cause_v some_o humiliation_n in_o our_o own_o mind_n though_o all_o this_o while_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n may_v wise_o design_n it_o for_o our_o advantage_n but_o nothing_o of_o this_o nature_n
secret_n of_o prince_n and_o administer_v occasion_n to_o disturb_v the_o order_n and_o government_n of_o the_o world_n which_o they_o indeed_o aught_o to_o introduce_v who_o undertake_v to_o be_v so_o particular_a and_o nice_a in_o confess_v the_o sin_n of_o other_o man_n or_o pray_v for_o the_o thing_n individual_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o but_o to_o proceed_v by_o our_o absolution_n the_o true_a penitent_n be_v only_o encourage_v and_o that_o authority_n which_o our_o saviour_n leave_v with_o his_o last_o commission_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o gospel_n be_v keep_v up_o and_o maintain_v in_o pursuance_n of_o what_o christ_n say_v to_o his_o apostle_n after_o his_o resurrection_n when_o the_o state_n of_o his_o humiliation_n cease_v and_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o ascend_v with_o triumph_n to_o his_o father_n joh._n 20.23_o who_o sin_n you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v and_o who_o sin_n you_o retain_v they_o be_v retain_v furthermore_o we_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o order_n of_o our_o church_n to_o say_v our_o prayer_n day_n by_o day_n that_o so_o we_o may_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n pray_v without_o cease_v and_o continue_v instant_a in_o prayer_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o our_o adoption_n cry_v abba_n father_n and_o this_o because_o the_o prescription_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n himself_o give_v we_o both_o a_o pattern_n and_o direction_n for_o when_o he_o teach_v we_o to_o pray_v for_o bread_n which_o be_v the_o staff_n and_o support_v of_o our_o life_n day_n by_o day_n as_o to_o the_o object_n of_o our_o prayer_n we_o make_v our_o supplication_n to_o god_n alone_o through_o the_o merit_n and_o mediation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o admit_v no_o creature_n to_o partake_v in_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o either_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o public_a prayer_n be_v such_o as_o include_v our_o general_a want_n we_o always_o beg_v the_o pardon_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o temptation_n and_o evil_n we_o petition_v also_o for_o grace_n to_o assist_v we_o it_o be_v the_o influence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o in_o particular_a we_o ask_v those_o theological_a virtue_n of_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n without_o which_o we_o can_v be_v save_v we_o pray_v more_o especial_o as_o the_o ancient_n do_v even_o when_o they_o be_v persecute_v for_o king_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n that_o under_o they_o we_o may_v lead_v godly_a and_o quiet_a life_n nay_o we_o petition_v for_o man_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o in_o all_o circumstance_n that_o none_o may_v be_v shut_v out_o from_o the_o benefit_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o we_o beg_v all_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v needful_a for_o our_o body_n and_o our_o soul_n we_o pray_v for_o happy_a season_n of_o the_o year_n for_o prevention_n of_o and_o deliverance_n from_o all_o plague_n that_o may_v hurt_v the_o body_n and_o all_o evil_n that_o may_v assault_v the_o soul_n we_o pray_v against_o all_o the_o bad_a accident_n and_o misfortune_n of_o our_o life_n and_o that_o we_o may_v escape_v violence_n and_o sudden_a death_n because_o notwithstanding_o the_o notion_n some_o have_v of_o predestination_n death_n may_v be_v too_o surprise_v to_o the_o best_a and_o if_o not_o prevent_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n may_v advance_v towards_o and_o seize_v we_o too_o before_o we_o be_v prepare_v to_o receive_v it_o and_o therefore_o we_o further_a petition_n heaven_n that_o we_o may_v be_v fit_v for_o our_o last_o encounter_n and_o that_o we_o may_v submit_v with_o christian_a comfort_n and_o courage_n to_o and_o have_v a_o safe_a deliverance_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n we_o pray_v not_o indeed_o for_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n after_o their_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o low_a world_n because_o we_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o as_o the_o tree_n fall_v so_o it_o lie_v and_o as_o death_n find_v we_o so_o will_v judgement_n too_o nor_o do_v we_o know_v and_o how_o can_v we_o unless_o it_o be_v reveal_v of_o any_o middle_a place_n where_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n may_v suffer_v to_o their_o improvement_n and_o be_v purge_v by_o any_o material_a fire_n if_o we_o can_v suppose_v it_o to_o operate_v upon_o a_o immaterial_a be_v yet_o we_o pray_v as_o far_o for_o man_n depart_v this_o life_n as_o the_o primitive_a christian_n ever_o do_v and_o the_o form_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n teach_v we_o in_o that_o petition_n thy_o kingdom_n come_v viz._n that_o in_o order_n to_o the_o come_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o glory_n god_n will_v bring_v the_o just_a that_o be_v depart_v this_o life_n to_o a_o happy_a and_o a_o bless_a resurrection_n that_o so_o christ_n church_n which_o be_v militant_a on_o earth_n may_v final_o become_v triumphant_a in_o the_o heaven_n and_o we_o always_o give_v thanks_o for_o the_o example_n and_o triumph_n of_o those_o who_o have_v die_v in_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v rejoice_v with_o they_o who_o joy_n be_v now_o full_a according_a to_o their_o capacity_n and_o shall_v at_o the_o great_a day_n be_v much_o more_o enlarge_v our_o liturgy_n be_v so_o excellent_o frame_v that_o as_o there_o be_v no_o sort_n of_o man_n but_o what_o we_o have_v some_o petition_n for_o so_o there_o be_v no_o condition_n we_o can_v be_v cast_v into_o but_o the_o whole_a community_n who_o join_v in_o our_o service_n share_n with_o we_o in_o sympathy_n and_o affection_n because_o they_o must_v remember_v we_o in_o our_o common_a church_n prayer_n and_o of_o this_o the_o litany_n be_v so_o full_a and_o expressive_a that_o particular_a collect_v seem_v to_o be_v redundant_fw-la when_o this_o be_v use_v yet_o we_o have_v even_o these_o too_o very_o suitable_a to_o the_o state_n of_o any_o that_o will_v desire_v that_o their_o grievance_n may_v be_v express_v to_o almighty_a god_n by_o he_o who_o offer_v up_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o congregation_n as_o far_o as_o modesty_n and_o cleanness_n of_o language_n be_v able_a to_o present_v they_o though_o not_o in_o those_o term_n in_o which_o they_o be_v former_o pitch_v up_o with_o a_o fork_n to_o load_v a_o pulpit_n and_o the_o minister_n hearty_a wish_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o devout_a affection_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n in_o a_o word_n our_o church_n direct_v and_o her_o true_a obedient_a son_n practice_v what_o the_o apostle_n advise_v the_o philippian_n to_o do_v chap._n 4._o ver_fw-la 6._o in_o every_o thing_n by_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n with_o thanksgiving_n let_v your_o request_n be_v make_v know_v unto_o god_n and_o as_o they_o who_o the_o apostle_n first_o convert_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n we_o continue_v steadfast_o in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o fellowship_n and_o in_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o in_o prayer_n our_o creed_n in_o which_o we_o make_v the_o public_a profession_n of_o our_o faith_n contain_v all_o article_n but_o yet_o no_o more_o than_o the_o pure_a christian_a church_n of_o the_o world_n have_v in_o all_o age_n of_o their_o religion_n declare_v they_o be_v neither_o stuff_v with_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n nor_o have_v we_o abate_v by_o the_o omission_n of_o ancient_a heretic_n or_o any_o that_o bear_v a_o new_a date_n nor_o do_v we_o receive_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v plain_o evident_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o for_o these_o we_o own_v neither_o spurious_a nor_o general_o doubt_v book_n our_o fellowship_n or_o society_n be_v uphold_v as_o all_o other_o must_v be_v by_o those_o who_o business_n it_o be_v to_o govern_v and_o those_o who_o duty_n it_o be_v to_o obey_v and_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o our_o ruler_n we_o have_v the_o advantage_n of_o some_o other_o church_n that_o be_v yet_o protestant_a in_o that_o we_o be_v govern_v by_o bishop_n for_o who_o order_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n notwithstanding_o any_o personal_a failure_n to_o which_o all_o that_o be_v call_v man_n be_v subject_a or_o the_o malicious_a imputation_n of_o any_o wicked_a and_o unreasonable_a man_n we_o have_v the_o same_o evidence_n if_o this_o word_n too_o be_v not_o in_o disgrace_n and_o consent_v among_o the_o ancient_n for_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n as_o we_o have_v for_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n for_o the_o abolish_n of_o the_o day_n of_o the_o jewish_a sabbath_n and_o instead_o of_o it_o for_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v yet_o learn_v all_o the_o three_o seem_v to_o stand_v upon_o the_o same_o foundation_n and_o if_o they_o fall_v they_o must_v be_v ruin_v together_o our_o sacrament_n be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o our_o bless_a saviour_n institute_v and_o command_v also_o to_o be_v use_v in_o his_o church_n that_o we_o may_v have_v some_o visible_a sign_n which_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o blessing_n may_v
reader_n that_o there_o be_v one_o part_n of_o their_o worship_n in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n that_o coster_n the_o jesuit_n in_o euchrid_n controv_fw-mi cap._n 8._o sect._n 10._o say_v can_v escape_v this_o charge_n upon_o it_o if_o the_o foundation_n of_o it_o be_v not_o true_a for_o say_v he_o if_o the_o true_a substantial_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o that_o sacrament_n but_o what_o we_o receive_v be_v in_o substance_n only_a bread_n and_o wine_n christ_n deal_v unworthy_o with_o his_o church_n who_o by_o occasion_n of_o his_o own_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n leave_v it_o for_o 1500_o year_n together_o in_o so_o great_a a_o error_n and_o such_o idolatry_n as_o be_v never_o see_v or_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o world_n and_o moreover_o he_o deliver_v in_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o last_o assertion_n that_o their_o error_n be_v much_o more_o tolerable_a who_o worship_v a_o gold_n or_o silver_n statue_n or_o any_o image_n of_o other_o matter_n for_o god_n as_o the_o gentile_n in_o time_n pass_v worship_v they_o or_o such_o as_o worship_v a_o piece_n of_o red_a cloth_n lift_v up_o on_o the_o top_n of_o a_o spear_n as_o be_v report_v of_o the_o laplander_n or_o live_a creature_n as_o ancient_o the_o egyptian_n do_v than_o the_o error_n of_o those_o who_o worship_n a_o bit_n of_o bread_n which_o hitherto_o say_v he_o but_o very_o false_o the_o christian_n have_v do_v suppose_v transubstantiation_n not_o true_a so_o that_o according_a to_o their_o own_o confession_n if_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o doctor_n render_v his_o own_o opinion_n probable_a if_o our_o saviour_n substantial_a and_o corporeal_a flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n but_o christ_n word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v figurative_o according_a to_o the_o expression_n use_v before_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o passover_n in_o which_o protestant_n have_v a_o apparent_a advantage_n in_o their_o proof_n and_o argument_n then_o any_o man_n may_v safe_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v idolater_n when_o they_o worship_v a_o wafer_n instead_o of_o god_n nay_o the_o worst_a sort_n of_o idolater_n in_o the_o world_n as_o the_o jesuit_n say_v in_o the_o forementioned_a place_n and_o this_o deserve_v not_o in_o reason_n any_o severe_a censure_n among_o themselves_o because_o upon_o their_o doctrine_n of_o probability_n the_o opinion_n of_o any_o one_o allow_v doctor_n among_o they_o may_v be_v safe_o follow_v without_o peril_n of_o damnation_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o principle_n it_o may_v be_v very_o lawful_a to_o shift_v opinion_n when_o these_o doctor_n contradict_v one_o another_o this_o i_o be_o sure_a when_o urge_v home_o by_o one_o that_o have_v more_o skill_n in_o controversy_n than_o i_o will_v take_v off_o that_o by_o which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o charge_v those_o protestant_n with_o great_a uncharitableness_n who_o draw_v this_o impeachment_n high_a against_o they_o when_o they_o accuse_v they_o of_o idolatry_n in_o their_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n and_o invalidate_v the_o best_a answer_n they_o have_v upon_o the_o supposition_n that_o transubstantiation_n be_v false_a viz._n that_o it_o be_v true_a to_o they_o because_o they_o believe_v it_o and_o therefore_o although_o adoration_n of_o the_o host_n will_v be_v idolatry_n in_o another_o of_o a_o contrary_a persuasion_n yet_o they_o can_v be_v guilty_a of_o such_o a_o crime_n because_o they_o worship_v not_o the_o bread_n which_o they_o believe_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n to_o be_v absent_a but_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v present_a together_o with_o his_o body_n and_o his_o soul_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o after_o they_o have_v conjure_v he_o into_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n so_o that_o these_o hide_v he_o from_o any_o discovery_n by_o the_o bodily_a sense_n of_o mankind_n they_o seem_v first_o to_o make_v he_o present_a then_o adore_v what_o they_o have_v so_o make_v and_o at_o last_o eat_v up_o and_o devour_v he_o unless_o they_o can_v again_o slip_v he_o away_o betwixt_o their_o finger_n and_o their_o tooth_n together_o yet_o if_o transubstantiation_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o this_o be_v false_a than_o we_o may_v still_o charge_v the_o papist_n with_o idolatry_n according_a to_o the_o probable_a opinion_n of_o the_o jesuit_n but_o what_o have_v we_o dull_a protestant_n to_o do_v with_o this_o or_o their_o doctrine_n of_o probability_n by_o which_o they_o only_o innocent_o design_n to_o serve_v their_o own_o turn_n to_o enter_v upon_o such_o point_n too_o far_o will_v overdo_v my_o present_a purpose_n and_o i_o may_v in_o the_o wind_a up_o of_o the_o bottom_n be_v accuse_v for_o charge_v the_o romish_a church_n with_o the_o doctrine_n and_o conclusion_n of_o particular_a man_n and_o cause_v all_o the_o excellent_a order_n among_o they_o to_o speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o jesuit_n which_o some_o papist_n for_o design_n best_o know_v to_o themselves_o will_v ready_o and_o not_o without_o cause_n consider_v all_o thing_n confess_v to_o be_v the_o most_o pernicious_a order_n or_o rather_o sect_n that_o ever_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n i._n e._n the_o worst_a in_o the_o christian_a world_n let_v we_o leave_v this_o then_o and_o come_v out_o from_o among_o they_o and_o meddle_v no_o long_o with_o the_o nice_a affair_n of_o particular_a society_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o my_o present_a purpose_n if_o from_o my_o precedent_a discourse_n of_o prayer_n i_o may_v just_o and_o by_o due_a consequence_n infer_v that_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v such_o as_o be_v repugnant_a to_o god_n reveal_v will_n that_o it_o may_v just_o be_v brand_v with_o superstition_n according_a to_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n that_o it_o be_v such_o as_o the_o great_a number_n of_o those_o who_o be_v common_o present_a at_o it_o can_v accompany_v with_o due_a and_o proper_a intention_n of_o their_o mind_n that_o their_o prayer_n be_v such_o as_o god_n have_v no_o where_o promise_v to_o hear_v and_o their_o method_n of_o address_n such_o as_o christianity_n never_o prescribe_v nor_o be_v by_o any_o church_n in_o the_o first_o time_n ever_o practise_v nay_o not_o by_o their_o own_o till_o they_o have_v debauch_v the_o best_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n to_o advance_v themselves_o corrupt_v good_a manner_n and_o cause_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o truckle_n to_o their_o fancy_n and_o begin_v to_o sacrifice_n to_o their_o own_o net_n and_o make_v st._n peter_n successor_n at_o rome_n such_o cunning_a fisherman_n as_o catch_v only_o such_o fish_n as_o bring_v money_n in_o their_o mouth_n make_v merchandise_n of_o man_n soul_n that_o they_o may_v gain_v a_o temporal_a advantage_n by_o the_o traffic_n these_o be_v head_n sufficient_a for_o a_o protestant_n to_o discourse_n upon_o but_o i_o must_v omit_v such_o and_o many_o more_o if_o i_o dilate_v coherent_o to_o what_o i_o have_v confine_v myself_o and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o now_o make_v discovery_n of_o that_o apparent_a sacrilege_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n deprive_v the_o people_n nay_o the_o priest_n too_o unless_o they_o consecrate_v of_o half_a their_o communion_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n whilst_o they_o think_v a_o pretty_a invention_n of_o concomitancy_n will_v excuse_v their_o theft_n when_o our_o saviour_n institute_v and_o give_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n distinct_a from_o each_o other_o that_o his_o real_a death_n may_v be_v the_o better_o signify_v since_o his_o blood_n be_v actual_o separate_v from_o his_o body_n nor_o shall_v i_o write_v at_o this_o time_n concern_v the_o villainy_n of_o their_o confession_n and_o absolution_n which_o as_o they_o use_v they_o to_o base_a and_o bloody_a and_o secular_a advantage_n be_v most_o intolerable_a nor_o of_o all_o the_o ridiculous_a indefensible_a and_o burdensome_a ceremony_n with_o which_o they_o usual_o so_o load_v their_o devotion_n that_o baffle_v all_o true_a evangelical_n worship_n confound_v the_o intention_n of_o man_n mind_n turn_v the_o reasonable_a service_n of_o their_o body_n into_o pageanty_n and_o stage_n play_v make_v their_o prayer_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o offer_v nothing_o but_o a_o external_a show_n the_o labour_n of_o the_o lip_n and_o outside_n devotion_n turn_v their_o priesthood_n into_o such_o a_o trade_n that_o all_o the_o preparation_n of_o learning_n and_o divinity_n can_v enter_v they_o but_o novice_n into_o the_o school_n of_o exercise_n and_o they_o have_v need_n serve_v another_o apprenticeship_n to_o teach_v they_o the_o posture_n and_o giggombob_n of_o action_n though_o these_o and_o many_o other_o thing_n as_o vain_a and_o bad_a be_v prescribe_v and_o command_v in_o their_o book_n of_o office_n
the_o reason_n why_o i_o insist_v not_o now_o on_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o be_v because_o the_o main_a subject_n of_o my_o discourse_n be_v prayer_n only_o i_o will_v not_o have_v my_o inference_n transgress_v the_o rule_n in_o charge_v adversary_n with_o such_o error_n as_o be_v not_o plain_o to_o be_v conclude_v from_o the_o premise_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a at_o this_o time_n to_o show_v how_o abominable_a the_o popish_a allow_v prayer_n be_v without_o intermix_v the_o thing_n that_o attend_v they_o now_o the_o papist_n must_v needs_o offend_v god_n with_o their_o public_a prayer_n and_o consequent_o must_v enrage_v instead_o of_o appease_v he_o because_o they_o be_v not_o suitable_a to_o his_o sacred_a word_n nor_o that_o worship_n which_o christian_n in_o the_o pure_a time_n use_v in_o their_o public_a divine_a service_n and_o this_o will_v be_v confirm_v by_o two_o reason_n 1._o because_o their_o public_a prayer_n be_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n 2._o because_o they_o pray_v to_o creature_n when_o they_o ought_v to_o pray_v to_o god_n only_o first_o the_o public_a prayer_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n sometime_o unknown_a to_o the_o priest_n himself_o who_o by_o the_o help_n of_o accent_n the_o advantage_n he_o have_v of_o hide_v his_o infirmity_n in_o those_o he_o pretend_v as_o he_o be_v direct_v to_o repeat_v secret_o and_o by_o frequent_a use_n can_v untoward_o pronounce_v they_o but_o more_o especial_o be_v they_o unknown_a to_o the_o people_n at_o least_o the_o generality_n of_o they_o who_o can_v with_o any_o reason_n be_v suppose_v to_o understand_v language_n beyond_o what_o their_o mother_n teach_v they_o unless_o mother_n church_n can_v inspire_v they_o with_o cleave_a tongue_n and_o turn_v all_o its_o child_n into_o apostle_n for_o latin_a in_o which_o the_o roman_a public_a prayer_n be_v utter_v be_v now_o become_v a_o learned_a language_n in_o all_o those_o dominion_n which_o the_o pope_n overspread_v and_o shadow_n with_o his_o wing_n and_o the_o gain_n of_o it_o require_v a_o distinct_a from_o vulgar_a education_n it_o be_v the_o general_a language_n of_o no_o country_n in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o how_o shall_v the_o multitude_n of_o a_o nation_n understand_v it_o now_o public_a prayer_n as_o i_o have_v show_v before_o aught_o to_o be_v so_o compose_v for_o matter_n and_o word_n that_o all_o who_o be_v bind_v to_o join_v in_o it_o shall_v full_o understand_v it_o that_o they_o may_v apprehend_v before_o they_o give_v their_o consent_n to_o it_o that_o so_o they_o may_v hearty_o agree_v in_o each_o petition_n and_o say_v amen_o at_o the_o close_a and_o period_n but_o how_o can_v people_n possible_o consent_v or_o intend_v their_o mind_n and_o engage_v their_o affection_n with_o any_o reason_n to_o such_o a_o service_n which_o be_v utter_v in_o a_o language_n which_o they_o understand_v not_o in_o such_o a_o case_n they_o may_v by_o the_o imposition_n of_o another_o blaspheme_v god_n when_o they_o think_v that_o they_o adore_v he_o and_o wish_v for_o a_o curse_n instead_o of_o a_o blessing_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o will_v be_v as_o it_o be_v in_o england_n be_v it_o establish_v again_o though_o i_o may_v notwithstanding_o without_o disparagement_n to_o any_o suppose_v that_o many_o that_o may_v peruse_v this_o writing_n however_o many_o that_o hear_v it_o from_o the_o pulpit_n can_v pretend_v to_o understand_v latin_n and_o yet_o this_o service_n be_v what_o all_o person_n in_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v oblige_v to_o under_o most_o rigid_a and_o severe_a penalty_n unless_o they_o will_v renounce_v the_o decree_n of_o that_o council_n beyond_o the_o controversy_n of_o our_o neighbour_a nation_n which_o they_o must_v own_v to_o be_v general_a and_o infallible_a though_o both_o the_o adjunct_n be_v false_o apply_v for_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess_n 22._o cap._n 8._o determine_v for_o this_o unreasonable_a and_o brutish_a service_n and_o oblige_v those_o who_o understand_v not_o the_o language_n but_o not_o without_o due_a caution_n in_o the_o decree_n that_o a_o power_n of_o dispense_n may_v remain_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o case_n that_o may_v best_o serve_v his_o turn_n with_o those_o to_o who_o he_o think_v fit_v to_o appoint_v prayer_n in_o their_o vulgar_a language_n who_o may_v be_v inclinable_a to_o receive_v or_o else_o to_o recall_v banish_v popery_n for_o the_o council_n have_v word_v their_o decree_n of_o this_o as_o if_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o objection_n of_o those_o who_o on_o the_o apostle_n side_n maintain_v prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n but_o despise_v the_o contrary_a viz._n that_o it_o have_v seem_v to_o the_o father_n not_o to_o be_v expedient_a that_o every_o where_o mass_n shall_v be_v lay_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n this_n not_o to_o be_v expedient_a be_v a_o soft_a expression_n which_o they_o can_v when_o they_o please_v explain_v effectual_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a and_o every_o where_o when_o it_o serve_v their_o turn_n will_v be_v easy_o exchange_v for_o any_o where_n but_o it_o help_v bellarmin_n very_o much_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o argument_n against_o the_o necessity_n of_o latin_a service_n from_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n to_o the_o moravian_o to_o use_v the_o sclavonian_a language_n in_o their_o divine_a office_n and_o help_v forward_o the_o like_a dispensation_n to_o ourselves_o for_o a_o present_a turn_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v we_o so_o well_o prepare_v as_o a_o late_o execute_v papist_n thought_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o other_o thing_n to_o conform_v so_o much_o to_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o it_o may_v in_o time_n be_v again_o complete_o plant_v among_o we_o that_o so_o the_o pope_n may_v receive_v plentiful_a fruit_n from_o those_o tree_n which_o from_o rome_n he_o have_v transplant_v into_o so_o rich_a a_o soil_n as_o england_n be_v but_o at_o last_o without_o question_n whatever_o may_v be_v grant_v at_o the_o first_o we_o shall_v be_v serve_v as_o bellarmin_n tell_v we_o the_o moravian_o be_v even_o turn_v whole_o to_o our_o latin_a service_n when_o the_o pope_n have_v raise_v bishop_n and_o priest_n of_o his_o own_o to_o advance_v themselves_o and_o curb_v other_o and_o england_n be_v well_o inhabit_v by_o italian_n but_o they_o who_o can_v dispense_v with_o god_n law_n may_v easy_o dispense_v with_o one_o of_o their_o own_o especial_o a_o indulgence_n in_o some_o thing_n may_v be_v a_o convenient_a instrument_n to_o confound_v the_o principle_n which_o man_n be_v use_v to_o be_v loath_a to_o renounce_v all_o at_o once_o and_o to_o introduce_v other_o gradual_o till_o they_o embrace_v all_o thus_o it_o be_v usual_a for_o one_o who_o intend_v to_o drive_v a_o flock_n of_o sheep_n before_o he_o he_o will_v let_v they_o feed_v beyond_o their_o bound_n till_o he_o be_v get_v on_o the_o command_a side_n of_o they_o and_o then_o he_o drive_v they_o into_o what_o coop_n or_o pen_n he_o please_v and_o true_o we_o who_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n and_o piety_n of_o prince_n profess_v the_o true_o ancient_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n have_v need_n walk_v circumspect_o and_o look_v about_o we_o for_o fear_v of_o those_o popish_a snare_n that_o be_v set_v for_o we_o by_o popish_a emissary_n to_o catch_v and_o imprison_v we_o first_o that_o they_o may_v in_o triumph_n lead_v we_o captive_n to_o their_o great_a prince_n and_o master_n for_o the_o pope_n be_v like_o the_o old_a serpent_n if_o you_o once_o allow_v he_o his_o desire_a supremacy_n he_o will_v quick_o become_v infallible_a and_o then_o our_o whole_a cause_n be_v lose_v give_v he_o but_o a_o hole_n for_o his_o head_n to_o peep_v through_o and_o it_o will_v not_o be_v long_o ere_o he_o wriggle_v in_o his_o whole_a body_n but_o bless_a be_v god_n we_o have_v no_o need_n of_o he_o though_o he_o plain_o discover_v that_o he_o have_v need_n of_o we_o nor_o do_v we_o desire_v to_o partake_v in_o or_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o service_n but_o to_o continue_v in_o our_o own_o most_o holy_a worship_n and_o if_o we_o can_v help_v it_o he_o shall_v not_o take_v it_o away_o from_o we_o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o some_o romanist_n have_v think_v we_o to_o be_v ready_o prepare_v for_o their_o communion_n be_v qualify_v with_o vice_n and_o debauchery_n enough_o which_o they_o themselves_o have_v be_v teach_v we_o for_o many_o year_n take_v their_o advantage_n from_o that_o unlimited_a loyal_a joy_n which_o possess_v the_o nation_n at_o the_o king_n return_v to_o take_v his_o right_n and_o to_o sit_v upon_o that_o throne_n from_o which_o he_o be_v bar_v by_o usurpation_n and_o force_n but_o this_o great_a restauration_n be_v the_o handiwork_n of_o god_n the_o devil_n and_o rome_n think_v
to_o have_v their_o advantage_n by_o it_o and_o have_v several_a year_n try_v their_o skill_n but_o god_n providence_n be_v too_o hard_o for_o they_o and_o even_o yet_o praise_v for_o ever_o be_v the_o great_a name_n of_o the_o eternal_a jehovah_n though_o the_o romanist_n as_o well_o as_o other_o weak_a yet_o presumptuous_a man_n have_v think_v we_o march_v direct_o towards_o rome_n we_o have_v a_o protestant_a king_n to_o rule_v and_o govern_v we_o such_o generous_a and_o faithful_a counsellor_n who_o advise_v he_o and_o such_o skilful_a and_o stout_a champion_n to_o encounter_v they_o and_o above_o all_o the_o god_n of_o protestant_n to_o undermine_v and_o resist_v they_o that_o we_o may_v yet_o say_v the_o lord_n be_v our_o helper_n we_o will_v not_o fear_v what_o man_n can_v do_v unto_o we_o nay_o though_o a_o host_n of_o man_n shall_v be_v encamp_v against_o as_o we_o will_v not_o slavish_o fear_v evil_a although_o we_o be_v sensible_a that_o in_o this_o cause_n of_o religion_n which_o love_v not_o to_o be_v plant_v with_o the_o point_n of_o a_o sword_n our_o adversary_n have_v exchange_v their_o writing_n for_o stratagem_n leave_v their_o argument_n and_o be_v almost_o ready_a to_o run_v to_o their_o weapon_n but_o whither_o will_v zeal_n transport_v a_o man_n beyond_o the_o present_a subject_n of_o debate_n when_o he_o meet_v with_o a_o enemy_n that_o be_v always_o betray_v and_o ready_a to_o pierce_v a_o man_n bowel_n i_o shall_v therefore_o enforce_v this_o argument_n and_o inference_n against_o the_o papist_n prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n with_o two_o consideration_n that_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o determine_v the_o controversy_n and_o be_v sufficient_a with_o reference_n to_o this_o particular_a to_o abate_v the_o kindness_n of_o any_o person_n at_o least_o all_o that_o be_v well_o instruct_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o check_v any_o inclination_n to_o the_o embracement_n of_o such_o a_o communion_n whole_a constitution_n hinder_v they_o from_o understand_v their_o prayer_n that_o ignorance_n may_v make_v man_n fit_a for_o their_o devotion_n and_o part_v with_o their_o reason_n and_o sense_n too_o they_o may_v be_v draw_v after_o the_o pope_n chariot_n with_o their_o eye_n put_v out_o and_z at_o last_o be_v lead_v into_o a_o feign_a purgatory_n howl_v and_o squal_v as_o if_o they_o be_v all_o quaker_n that_o he_o may_v when_o he_o please_v as_o the_o silver_n move_v open_v the_o door_n or_o keep_v they_o fast_o and_o when_o he_o turn_v the_o key_n at_o last_o instead_o of_o give_v they_o joy_n and_o liberty_n they_o may_v find_v they_o be_v enter_v into_o a_o real_a hell_n from_o which_o there_o be_v no_o redemption_n at_o all_o but_o yet_o before_o we_o go_v thither_o or_o pray_v away_o our_o own_o understanding_n in_o such_o a_o worship_n in_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o those_o to_o join_v who_o ken_v not_o latin_a in_o which_o it_o be_v deliver_v let_v we_o 1._o consider_v whether_o st._n paul_n be_v not_o above_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n rather_o to_o be_v credit_v than_o the_o cunning_o devise_v fable_n of_o man_n this_o great_a apostle_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n 1_o cor._n 14.14_o acquaint_v the_o world_n with_o such_o language_n as_o this_o if_o i_o pray_v say_v he_o in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n my_o spirit_n pray_v but_o my_o undersanding_n be_v unfruitful_a by_o unknown_a tongue_n every_o body_n know_v what_o be_v mean_v but_o in_o the_o latter_a clause_n some_o may_v be_v ignorant_a and_o other_o make_v use_n of_o these_o expression_n and_o their_o own_o vanity_n and_o unskilfulness_n together_o to_o lead_v man_n from_o latin_a service_n into_o a_o rude_a and_o ungovernable_a devotion_n by_o spirit_n therefore_o be_v mean_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n not_o flow_v forth_o in_o extempore_o expression_n now_o but_o in_o strange_a language_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o appear_v by_o st._n paul_n interpretation_n of_o himself_o for_o when_o he_o have_v exhort_v man_n to_o employ_v one_o of_o the_o spiritual_a gift_n foremention_v in_o this_o chapter_n to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n ver_fw-la the_o 12_o in_o the_o next_o he_o explain_v it_o by_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n nay_o in_o the_o very_a particular_a text_n quote_v the_o pray_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v apparent_o the_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n if_o i_o pray_v say_v he_o in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n my_o spirit_n pray_v but_o my_o understanding_n be_v unfruitful_a that_o be_v though_o he_o understand_v the_o language_n himself_o yet_o it_o be_v unknown_a to_o other_o his_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o own_o prayer_n can_v not_o render_v they_o beneficial_a to_o those_o that_o hear_v they_o and_o therefore_o he_o conclude_v upon_o the_o whole_a that_o he_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n yet_o so_o that_o he_o may_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n too_o he_o will_v not_o only_o pray_v in_o such_o a_o language_n by_o himself_o which_o he_o understand_v that_o he_o may_v accompany_v his_o word_n with_o due_a intention_n and_o suitable_a affection_n but_o he_o will_v pray_v also_o that_o his_o understanding_n may_v be_v fruitful_a unto_o other_o by_o put_v his_o petition_n into_o such_o a_o language_n as_o the_o people_n may_v be_v able_a to_o understand_v that_o so_o they_o may_v join_v with_o he_o and_o be_v edify_v by_o it_o second_o consider_v that_o prayer_n not_o understand_v by_o those_o who_o be_v to_o join_v in_o it_o be_v utter_v in_o a_o language_n which_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o lose_v those_o bless_a influence_n and_o end_n to_o which_o it_o be_v design_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v upon_o the_o devotionist_n particular_o by_o their_o understanding_n to_o move_v their_o will_n and_o obtain_v their_o consent_n to_o raise_v their_o affection_n suitable_a to_o the_o petition_n make_v for_o they_o that_o so_o the_o act_n of_o the_o minister_n may_v become_v their_o own_o and_o they_o know_v what_o be_v deliver_v may_v rational_o consent_v and_o earnest_o desire_v the_o thing_n pray_v for_o and_o have_v their_o several_a interest_n in_o all_o for_o they_o be_v beast_n rather_o than_o man_n who_o be_v drive_v on_o they_o know_v not_o whither_o and_o say_v amen_o to_o such_o petition_n or_o at_o all_o adventure_n assert_v the_o truth_n of_o such_o proposition_n which_o they_o have_v no_o apprehension_n of_o and_o may_v with_o reference_n to_o their_o understanding_n be_v as_o well_o false_a as_o true_a in_o such_o a_o case_n they_o fix_v their_o seal_n either_o by_o the_o example_n or_o authority_n of_o another_o to_o what_o for_o aught_o they_o know_v oblige_v they_o to_o ruin_v and_o may_v sign_v their_o execution_n when_o they_o hope_v to_o receive_v a_o pardon_n it_o be_v impossible_a at_o man_n shall_v with_o any_o reason_n signify_v his_o assent_n to_o that_o or_o hearty_o wish_v for_o those_o thing_n mention_v in_o a_o prayer_n when_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v whether_o they_o be_v include_v in_o it_o or_o no_o unless_o man_n can_v think_v it_o rational_a to_o set_v their_o hand_n at_o all_o adventure_n to_o every_o paper_n that_o be_v bring_v to_o they_o when_o they_o may_v sign_v a_o bond_n instead_o ofa_fw-mi release_n or_o make_v away_o a_o estate_n instead_o of_o make_v it_o sure_a to_o they_o but_o i_o may_v be_v confident_a man_n be_v wary_a enough_o in_o this_o and_o need_v not_o unless_o they_o be_v foolish_a to_o a_o proverb_n any_o monitor_n to_o caution_n they_o in_o it_o though_o their_o want_n of_o skill_n may_v cause_v they_o to_o advise_v in_o some_o nice_a and_o critical_a difficulty_n and_o be_v it_o reasonable_a think_v you_o that_o the_o child_n of_o this_o world_n shall_v be_v always_o wise_a than_o the_o child_n of_o light_n or_o that_o any_o to_o who_o the_o glorious_a gospel_n be_v reveal_v shall_v be_v more_o cautious_a and_o exact_a in_o relation_n to_o their_o secular_a welfare_n than_o they_o be_v with_o reference_n to_o their_o eternal_a advantage_n will_v they_o beg_v a_o serpent_n instead_o of_o a_o fish_n or_o desire_v a_o stone_n instead_o of_o bread_n a_o little_a child_n will_v hardly_o be_v so_o gull_v and_o cheat_v but_o when_o such_o a_o exchange_n be_v proffer_v will_v throw_v it_o away_o with_o rage_n and_o contempt_n but_o further_a that_o which_o aggravate_v the_o fault_n of_o man_n so_o easy_o impose_v upon_o be_v that_o where_o they_o give_v their_o assent_n without_o reason_n and_o desire_v what_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v whether_o it_o be_v advantageous_a or_o unprofitable_a to_o they_o they_o choose_v what_o be_v no_o object_n of_o their_o choice_n because_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o apprehend_v any_o goodness_n at_o all_o in_o that_o who_o nature_n and_o accommodation_n to_o they_o they_o be_v total_o ignorant_a of_o
he_o have_v a_o brow_n of_o brass_n may_v say_v to_o those_o who_o understand_v not_o or_o else_o never_o look_v into_o their_o allow_a breviary_n or_o their_o common_a and_o establish_a mass-book_n that_o we_o charge_v they_o with_o what_o they_o be_v not_o guilty_a of_o i_o must_v instance_n in_o a_o few_o particular_n in_o which_o prayer_n be_v make_v to_o glorify_a creature_n and_o to_o some_o inanimate_a thing_n too_o in_o the_o public_a office_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n since_o some_o of_o the_o professor_n of_o that_o religion_n be_v so_o bold_a and_o apparent_o wicked_a that_o to_o serve_v a_o turn_n they_o will_v affirm_v it_o be_v dark_a in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o light_v even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o darkness_n and_o nothing_o almost_o according_a to_o their_o principle_n of_o equivocation_n and_o mental_a reservation_n if_o they_o take_v also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o probable_a opinion_n in_o to_o their_o assistance_n can_v be_v propound_v but_o they_o may_v either_o affirm_v or_o deny_v as_o it_o make_v for_o the_o advantage_n of_o their_o church_n nay_o they_o be_v bind_v according_a to_o the_o determination_n of_o bellarmin_n to_o say_v that_o virtue_n be_v vice_n or_o vice_n virtue_n if_o the_o pope_n so_o conclude_v either_o but_o yet_o my_o present_a charge_n be_v so_o apparent_o true_a that_o all_o must_v own_v it_o to_o any_o that_o have_v knowledge_n of_o their_o public_a service_n whatever_o they_o may_v at_o any_o time_n reply_n to_o the_o ignorant_a that_o receive_v the_o charge_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o other_o for_o in_o their_o commune_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la there_o be_v a_o hymn_n consist_v both_o of_o prayer_n and_o praise_n in_o which_o we_o find_v these_o expression_n vos_fw-fr saecli_fw-la justi_fw-la judices_fw-la etc._n etc._n speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n they_o say_v o_o you_o just_a judge_n and_o light_n of_o the_o world_n we_o beseech_v you_o with_o the_o desire_n of_o our_o heart_n to_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o your_o supplicant_n you_o that_o shut_v the_o heaven_n with_o a_o word_n and_o unlock_v they_o again_o lose_v we_o we_o pray_v you_o from_o all_o our_o sin_n by_o your_o command_n you_o to_o who_o authority_n be_v subject_a both_o the_o health_n and_o misery_n of_o all_o etc._n etc._n in_o their_o office_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n you_o have_v these_o expression_n o_o marry_o mother_n of_o grace_n mother_n of_o mercy_n protect_v we_o from_o the_o enemy_n and_o receive_v we_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n and_o let_v the_o virgin_n mary_n together_o with_o her_o offspring_n bestow_v her_o blessing_n upon_o we_o and_o the_o like_a i_o shall_v instance_n yet_o in_o one_o more_o although_o many_o know_v i_o may_v translate_v a_o multitude_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n into_o this_o discourse_n and_o that_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o service_n relate_v to_o one_o who_o be_v the_o founder_n of_o one_o of_o the_o most_o pernicious_a sect_n that_o ever_o infest_a the_o christian_a world_n in_o comparison_n to_o many_o of_o who_o the_o gnostic_n be_v saint_n the_o goth_n and_o vandal_n be_v of_o a_o religious_a order_n the_o great_a turk_n become_v a_o christian_n and_o the_o wild_a fanatic_a be_v temperate_a and_o mild_a i_o mean_v ignatius_n loyola_n who_o found_v the_o first_o society_n of_o the_o jesuit_n to_o perplex_v and_o confound_v the_o council_n of_o prince_n and_o carry_v on_o mischievous_a design_n against_o we_o as_o well_o by_o those_o who_o have_v be_v at_o the_o top_n as_o those_o that_o remain_v at_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o ladder_n in_o the_o service_n at_o the_o celebration_n of_o his_o festival_n there_o be_v this_o prayer_n or_o collect_v on_o the_o one_o and_o thirty_o day_n of_o july_n o_o god_n who_o for_o the_o great_a propagation_n of_o thy_o glory_n have_v strengthen_v thy_o church_n militant_a proper_o so_o indeed_o under_o the_o command_n of_o a_o jesuit_n with_o a_o new_a aid_n by_o bless_a ignatius_n grant_v that_o we_o who_o strive_v or_o fight_v on_o earth_n by_o the_o imitation_n and_o help_n of_o he_o may_v deserve_v with_o he_o to_o be_v crown_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o if_o they_o all_o deserve_v the_o same_o lot_n may_v they_o together_o possess_v the_o same_o place_n for_o fear_v they_o shall_v be_v as_o troublesome_a to_o we_o in_o the_o other_o world_n as_o they_o have_v be_v in_o this_o but_o i_o will_v no_o long_o employ_v myself_o in_o translate_n their_o prayer_n many_o instance_n of_o their_o petition_n to_o saint_n and_o angel_n have_v be_v expose_v to_o view_v in_o most_o book_n that_o have_v be_v by_o protestant_n write_v against_o they_o i_o hearty_o wish_v that_o those_o who_o use_v such_o prayer_n understand_v they_o better_o because_o they_o will_v then_o more_o easy_o see_v how_o poison_n be_v wrap_v in_o gild_a pill_n why_o shall_v i_o relate_v the_o attribute_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n give_v to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n as_o great_a as_o to_o he_o who_o suffer_v on_o it_o and_o yet_o have_v no_o method_n to_o shift_v their_o blasphemy_n but_o by_o the_o same_o way_n in_o which_o they_o translate_v their_o prayer_n and_o praise_n too_o from_o the_o cross_n to_o he_o who_o die_v upon_o it_o and_o though_o i_o love_v not_o to_o pursue_v a_o lion_n to_o his_o den_n for_o fear_v that_o be_v weary_a he_o may_v be_v hungry_a too_o and_o take_v some_o opportunity_n to_o rend_v and_o devour_v yet_o it_o will_v be_v a_o strange_a expression_n from_o a_o protestant_n mouth_n that_o which_o must_v needs_o grate_v upon_o the_o ear_n of_o all_o the_o devout_a worshipper_n of_o god_n and_o such_o as_o believe_v that_o their_o prayer_n be_v hear_v only_o through_o the_o merit_n and_o intercession_n of_o christ_n sancta_fw-la crux_fw-la or_o a_o pro_fw-la nobis_fw-la holy_a cross_n pray_v for_o we_o and_o ave_fw-la crux_fw-la spes_fw-la unica_fw-la hail_v cross_v our_o only_a hope_n will_v be_v word_n that_o to_o we_o will_v not_o only_o seem_v ridiculous_a but_o abominable_a and_o if_o at_o all_o consider_v to_o any_o that_o hope_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n through_o he_o who_o suffer_v and_o dye_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o notwithstanding_o all_o these_o be_v thing_n as_o common_a with_o the_o papist_n as_o whine_v and_o another_o sort_n of_o nonsense_n be_v among_o some_o separatist_n that_o pretend_v to_o set_v themselves_o at_o the_o great_a distance_n from_o they_o nay_o any_o may_v see_v if_o they_o have_v skill_n and_o leisure_n to_o peruse_v it_o in_o a_o office_n of_o or_o relate_v to_o the_o holy_a cross_n print_v at_o paris_n 1664._o by_o public_a authority_n such_o strange_a expression_n as_o these_o be_v after_o it_o have_v begin_v with_o a_o prayer_n to_o god_n to_o free_a man_n from_o their_o enemy_n by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o if_o we_o shall_v make_v a_o thousand_o time_n upon_o ourselves_o we_o shall_v hardly_o be_v quit_v from_o those_o that_o be_v so_o devout_a to_o it_o we_o find_v afterward_o these_o expression_n o_o crux_fw-la venerabilis_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o know_v not_o how_o they_o may_v edify_v in_o latin_a but_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o they_o sound_v harsh_a in_o english_a and_o good_a or_o bad_a thus_o they_o run_v o_o venerable_a cross_n who_o have_v bring_v salvation_n to_o we_o miserable_a with_o what_o praise_n shall_v i_o extol_v thou_o because_o thou_o have_v prepare_v heavenly_a life_n for_o we_o and_o in_o the_o close_a of_o another_o hymn_n the_o style_n though_o a_o new_a one_o be_v in_o these_o word_n o_o victory_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o admirable_a sign_n make_v we_o to_o triumph_v in_o the_o celestial_a court_n or_o the_o court_n of_o heaven_n but_o this_o be_v a_o ungrateful_a task_n to_o i_o thus_o to_o transcribe_v the_o most_o abominable_a popish_a prayer_n and_o as_o unpleasant_a as_o it_o can_v be_v to_o protestant_n to_o read_v it_o and_o therefore_o i_o shall_v not_o fill_v these_o paper_n with_o those_o particular_a address_n which_o many_o of_o they_o make_v to_o individual_a saint_n as_o they_o account_v they_o who_o be_v depart_v this_o life_n for_o particular_a thing_n which_o they_o suppose_v to_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o they_o single_o to_o bestow_v whilst_o they_o appropriate_v one_o faculty_n to_o one_o and_o a_o second_o to_o another_o whilst_o they_o constitute_v a_o first_o to_o be_v a_o patron_n to_o their_o horse_n another_o to_o their_o sheep_n a_o three_o to_o their_o hog_n and_o another_o to_o keep_v off_o some_o disease_n from_o themselves_o or_o at_o least_o to_o cure_v it_o and_o so_o they_o make_v they_o groom_n or_o farrier_n or_o swiniard_n or_o shepherd_n or_o physician_n or_o mountebank_n or_o what_o they_o please_v for_o i_o be_o weary_a of_o rake_v in_o such_o a_o dunghill_n in_o which_o there_o be_v neither_o barley-corn_n nor_o jewel_n
be_v like_o the_o astrologer_n at_o rome_n always_o banish_v and_o yet_o ever_o here_o for_o interest_n and_o advantage_n quick_o turn_v prudence_n into_o subtlety_n and_o this_o as_o soon_o will_v erect_v a_o fortress_n to_o defend_v itself_o if_o it_o do_v not_o also_o expel_v honesty_n out_o of_o its_o neighbourhood_n nay_o this_o private_a interest_n of_o honour_n and_o wealth_n too_o frequent_o rule_v abundance_n of_o man_n in_o the_o make_n law_n submit_v to_o they_o and_o execute_v they_o too_o even_o against_o all_o right_a and_o public_a advantage_n this_o we_o find_v to_o have_v be_v former_o at_o rome_n for_o though_o there_o be_v sufficient_a and_o notorious_a evidence_n that_o the_o book_n find_v by_o petilius_n in_o numa_n grave_n be_v certain_o he_o yet_o because_o they_o be_v adjudge_v by_o the_o senate_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o present_a custom_n and_o law_n of_o the_o city_n and_o consequent_o may_v tell_v tale_n and_o make_v discovery_n and_o lay_v that_o common_a which_o be_v then_o enclose_v they_o be_v without_o any_o far_a enquiry_n sentence_v to_o be_v burn_v and_o thus_o we_o may_v without_o uncharitableness_n suppose_v that_o many_o deal_n with_o religion_n though_o they_o be_v convince_v or_o else_o dread_v the_o evidence_n will_v not_o have_v patience_n to_o attend_v the_o conclusion_n of_o a_o argument_n that_o what_o our_o church_n profess_v and_o injoin_v be_v naked_a truth_n yet_o because_o either_o its_o embracement_n or_o defence_n may_v at_o present_a or_o succeed_a time_n lay_v they_o open_v to_o some_o temporal_a trouble_n or_o inconvenience_n they_o will_v neither_o be_v honest_a to_o god_n nor_o baal_n but_o trim_a betwixt_o both_o keep_v their_o own_o boat_n upright_o let_v the_o tide_n and_o the_o wave_n beat_v which_o way_n they_o will_v and_o by_o another_o metaphor_n cut_v with_o whisker_n or_o shave_v all_o off_o and_o either_o they_o halt_v betwixt_o two_o opinion_n or_o if_o they_o profess_v one_o they_o will_v leave_v it_o when_o a_o storm_n arise_v and_o follow_v our_o bless_a lord_n himself_o only_o whilst_o the_o loaf_n last_o but_o desert_n he_o if_o he_o once_o want_v bread_n in_o a_o instance_n hint_v at_o a_o little_a before_o when_o idolatry_n be_v like_a to_o fall_v at_o ephesus_n and_o then_o the_o image_n can_v not_o stand_v by_o the_o powerful_a preach_v of_o st._n paul_n the_o people_n begin_v to_o entertain_v a_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v no_o god_n which_o be_v make_v with_o hand_n but_o at_o last_o demetrius_z a_o city_n orator_n and_o for_o aught_o i_o know_v master_n of_o his_o company_n assemble_v all_o his_o craftsman_n together_o and_o inform_v they_o that_o their_o livelihood_n will_v be_v in_o danger_n and_o their_o trade_n set_v at_o nought_o if_o such_o doctrine_n as_o christianity_n shall_v be_v prevalent_a among_o they_o as_o soon_o therefore_o as_o they_o understand_v that_o in_o the_o concernment_n of_o their_o religion_n their_o trade_n be_v involve_v by_o which_o they_o be_v to_o make_v out_o their_o fortune_n in_o this_o world_n and_o that_o the_o image_n of_o diana_n be_v that_o which_o support_v they_o they_o quick_o give_v a_o check_n to_o their_o own_o hesitation_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o grandeur_n of_o diana_n be_v present_o concern_v they_o grow_v full_a of_o wrath_n for_o what_o they_o have_v a_o favourable_a opinion_n of_o and_o cry_v out_o with_o the_o large_a throat_n they_o can_v make_v even_o for_o the_o full_a space_n of_o two_o hour_n great_a be_v diana_n of_o the_o ephesian_n act_n 19_o so_o wonderful_o prevalent_a be_v the_o sense_n of_o gain_n as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o only_a godliness_n for_o or_o against_o any_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n among_o man_n who_o only_o value_v the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o serpent_n but_o do_v not_o regard_v the_o innocence_n of_o the_o dove_n and_o now_o upon_o the_o view_n of_o this_o can_v any_o of_o we_o secure_v ourselves_o that_o they_o who_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whatever_o friendship_n there_o may_v be_v among_o themselves_o do_v not_o share_v in_o this_o thing_n can_v we_o conclude_v that_o they_o exalt_v not_o schism_n for_o wealth_n or_o reputation_n or_o upon_o any_o equilibrious_a or_o probable_a argument_n so_o much_o as_o hope_v that_o they_o adhere_v to_o a_o party_n where_o all_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n without_o some_o respect_n and_o design_n that_o be_v far_o different_a from_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o protestant_a interest_n if_o not_o then_o among_o english_a man_n that_o bid_v defiance_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o much_o more_o in_o those_o who_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o christian_n at_o large_a it_o be_v neither_o the_o external_a deportment_n of_o man_n their_o fluency_n of_o language_n nor_o any_o of_o their_o seem_a zeal_n or_o rapture_n that_o can_v evidence_n to_o we_o that_o their_o worship_n be_v such_o as_o become_v the_o glory_n or_o greatness_n of_o the_o deity_n or_o agreeable_a to_o the_o reason_n of_o mankind_n since_o gain_v will_v force_v man_n to_o appear_v godly_a in_o spite_n of_o all_o our_o tooth_n and_o though_o they_o be_v bite_v never_o so_o severe_o if_o they_o please_v they_o will_v run_v on_o still_o till_o you_o do_v not_o only_o catch_v they_o but_o hold_v they_o fast_o but_o let_v we_o leave_v the_o shell_n and_o pick_v out_o the_o kernel_n if_o we_o can_v find_v any_o in_o such_o a_o controversy_n as_o this_o and_o a_o maggot_n be_v not_o get_v into_o the_o nut_n let_v we_o travel_v from_o the_o porch_n to_o the_o temple_n and_o view_v both_o their_o sacrifice_n and_o altar_n if_o that_o word_n be_v not_o profane_a and_o see_v well_o whether_o the_o fire_n heat_v parallel_v to_o the_o blaze_n it_o make_v among_o they_o let_v we_o look_v into_o the_o modes_n by_o which_o our_o brethren-adversary_n make_v their_o address_n to_o almighty_a god_n and_o judge_v whether_o their_o prayer_n or_o deportment_n be_v suitable_a to_o that_o respect_n which_o in_o solemn_a invocation_n be_v rational_o due_a to_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o that_o infinite_a be_v who_o christian_a man_n pretend_v to_o adore_v the_o usual_a way_n of_o the_o native_a protestant_n of_o england_n who_o dissent_n from_o the_o liturgy_n and_o church_n establish_v in_o this_o nation_n by_o law_n among_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v to_o god_n without_o premeditation_n in_o relation_n unto_o word_n and_o as_o some_o affirm_v matter_n too_o expect_v in_o this_o assistance_n from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o rational_a faculty_n and_o external_a help_n though_o it_o be_v no_o way_n promise_v in_o this_o sense_n and_o so_o they_o can_v ponder_v beforehand_o what_o be_v sit_v to_o be_v offer_v to_o their_o maker_n now_o can_v it_o possible_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o greatness_n of_o that_o power_n which_o dispose_v and_o confer_v the_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n of_o this_o low_a world_n to_o admit_v such_o address_n which_o must_v be_v indigested_a and_o therefore_o rude_a if_o these_o man_n themselves_o be_v to_o petition_v any_o earthly_a prince_n for_o either_o a_o pardon_n or_o place_n of_o advantage_n they_o will_v very_o well_o consider_v both_o the_o matter_n and_o the_o form_n that_o neither_o inconvenience_n or_o absurdity_n may_v be_v mix_v with_o the_o one_o nor_o rudeness_n or_o too_o much_o familiarity_n enter_v into_o the_o composition_n of_o the_o other_o nay_o whosoever_o be_v choose_v to_o present_v it_o be_v usual_o person_n not_o only_o of_o integrity_n but_o prudence_n too_o not_o only_o such_o as_o may_v be_v acceptable_a to_o the_o prince_n but_o they_o who_o have_v a_o deportment_n suitable_a to_o majesty_n that_o can_v demean_v themselves_o with_o such_o humility_n and_o lowliness_n accompany_v with_o a_o correspondent_a desire_n not_o only_o to_o represent_v the_o grievance_n of_o the_o petitioner_n but_o their_o affection_n too_o signify_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o seriousness_n of_o their_o mind_n by_o the_o external_a gravity_n and_o submission_n express_v in_o the_o gesture_n and_o action_n of_o their_o body_n and_o can_v any_o think_v that_o the_o great_a god_n when_o we_o make_v religious_a address_n to_o he_o can_v be_v well_o please_v with_o what_o we_o account_v a_o affront_n to_o man_n since_o he_o be_v a_o rational_a live_a and_o infinite_a be_v it_o be_v true_a indeed_o we_o have_v find_v some_o in_o the_o world_n who_o ancient_o worship_v mercury_n by_o rail_v and_o hercules_n by_o throw_v stone_n at_o he_o but_o sure_o the_o god_n who_o christian_n pretend_v to_o serve_v be_v neither_o deaf_a that_o he_o can_v hear_v nor_o because_o he_o be_v strong_a be_v he_o become_v insensible_a reverence_n and_o a_o most_o awful_a fear_n be_v suitable_a ornament_n for_o he_o to_o wear_v who_o pretend_v to_o approach_v the_o almighty_a to_o adore_v he_o for_o he_o be_v
the_o more_o we_o employ_v our_o body_n in_o decent_a expression_n of_o gravity_n humility_n and_o apt_a affection_n to_o declare_v the_o inward_a intention_n of_o our_o mind_n which_o be_v full_a of_o all_o vigour_n and_o fervent_a desire_n and_o the_o most_o awful_a thought_n of_o that_o great_a majesty_n who_o we_o adore_v for_o this_o deportment_n give_v to_o god_n a_o whole_a sacrifice_n when_o other_o who_o in_o their_o prayer_n only_o hide_v their_o mind_n in_o their_o body_n as_o if_o they_o be_v confine_v as_o the_o heathen_a god_n to_o a_o immovable_a and_o stiff_a statue_n separate_v the_o inward_a action_n of_o their_o soul_n from_o any_o correspondent_a gesture_n of_o their_o body_n if_o they_o worship_v god_n at_o all_o which_o they_o seem_v not_o very_o fond_a to_o declare_v yet_o they_o devote_v only_o half_a of_o themselves_o and_o honour_v he_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o other_o man_n can_v neither_o see_v nor_o know_v unless_o man_n have_v casement_n in_o their_o breast_n that_o be_v open_v other_o may_v look_v into_o they_o but_o that_o the_o worship_n of_o man_n body_n ought_v to_o accompany_v the_o devotion_n of_o their_o mind_n be_v so_o apparent_a from_o god_n injunction_n under_o the_o law_n that_o it_o can_v admit_v of_o any_o contradiction_n and_o if_o we_o argue_v for_o it_o under_o the_o establishment_n in_o the_o gospel_n from_o those_o command_v we_o sin_v in_o the_o law_n we_o have_v nothing_o return_v but_o that_o the_o jew_n be_v a_o dull_a and_o stupid_a people_n in_o comparison_n to_o ourselves_o and_o man_n thus_o boast_v instead_o of_o have_v much_o cause_n of_o triumph_n for_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o invective_n we_o have_v hear_v against_o the_o pitiful_a carnality_n and_o dulness_n of_o the_o jew_n it_o appear_v too_o often_o to_o our_o great_a loss_n that_o they_o be_v as_o witty_a and_o more_o cunning_a than_o ourselves_o we_o indeed_o have_v receive_v help_n and_o advantage_n by_o the_o gospel_n and_o a_o great_a proportion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n in_o who_o they_o refuse_v to_o believe_v be_v better_o instruct_v in_o the_o method_n of_o a_o more_o spiritual_a religion_n than_o they_o can_v be_v under_o the_o law_n but_o yet_o what_o be_v then_o establish_v which_o reason_n enforce_v be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o mankind_n that_o be_v never_o yet_o repeat_v under_o the_o gospel_n nor_o ever_o can_v i_o may_v confident_o affirm_v may_v remain_v still_o without_o any_o check_n or_o control_v for_o use_v it_o and_o therefore_o i_o can_v come_v to_o any_o damage_n in_o affirm_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o man_n body_n in_o all_o their_o public_a address_n unto_o god_n aught_o to_o accompany_v that_o of_o their_o mind_n till_o better_a argument_n be_v bring_v against_o it_o than_o any_o which_o i_o have_v yet_o hear_v or_o see_v it_o be_v true_a indeed_o our_o saviour_n acquaint_v the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n that_o the_o hour_n come_v and_o now_o be_v when_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o true_a christian_a church_n shall_v worship_v the_o father_n in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n because_o he_o seek_v such_o to_o worship_v he_o john_n 4.23_o yet_o all_o this_o though_o when_o it_o be_v interpret_v according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o man_n make_v other_o stagger_v that_o be_v so_o weak_a as_o to_o desert_v their_o reason_n that_o they_o may_v become_v wise_a and_o go_v out_o of_o themselves_o to_o possess_v their_o soul_n and_o forsake_v the_o conduct_n of_o their_o own_o understanding_n guide_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n that_o they_o may_v be_v fright_v into_o the_o folly_n of_o other_o all_o this_o i_o say_v may_v when_o just_o enlarge_v on_o rebuke_v schism_n or_o idolatry_n or_o false_a worship_n but_o this_o text_n can_v authorise_v any_o detraction_n from_o external_a decency_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n nor_o abate_v from_o those_o orderly_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n that_o promote_v uniformity_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o he_o or_o tend_v to_o the_o sixation_n and_o establishment_n of_o true_a religion_n under_o the_o gospel_n nor_o such_o circumstance_n of_o devotion_n which_o be_v not_o in_o particular_a and_o direct_o abolish_v by_o the_o messiah_n have_v be_v before_o type_n and_o prefiguration_n of_o he_o to_o come_v if_o any_o of_o that_o external_a worship_n of_o our_o body_n be_v of_o this_o kind_n which_o be_v enjoin_v by_o our_o christian_a superior_n our_o practice_n will_v contradict_v our_o faith_n and_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o justify_v the_o jew_n in_o the_o expectation_n of_o a_o messiah_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v the_o conference_n betwixt_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o woman_n of_o samaria_n be_v so_o far_o from_o prohibit_v public_a place_n of_o worship_n or_o external_a gesture_n of_o our_o body_n in_o devotion_n adapt_v to_o the_o inward_a reverence_n of_o our_o mind_n that_o it_o establish_v a_o spiritual_a rational_a and_o evangelical_n worship_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o mosaic_a constitution_n and_o the_o samaritan_n schism_n and_o idolatry_n too_o and_o brief_o declare_v that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v now_o to_o be_v establish_v to_o abolish_v all_o other_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n that_o mankind_n be_v unite_v in_o one_o faith_n and_o hope_n and_o consent_v in_o one_o common_a principle_n and_o worship_v god_n through_o the_o mediation_n of_o their_o redeemer_n have_v live_v in_o this_o world_n with_o true_a devotion_n to_o the_o god_n that_o make_v they_o and_o in_o charity_n and_o peace_n among_o themselves_o may_v at_o last_o die_v with_o comfort_n within_o their_o own_o breast_n and_o then_o enter_v into_o the_o joy_n of_o their_o lord_n but_o if_o all_o this_o be_v large_o controvert_v to_o a_o victory_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o that_o text_n of_o solomon_n when_o he_o deliver_v point_n of_o a_o moral_a and_o perpetual_a establishment_n and_o of_o a_o universal_a concernment_n to_o mankind_n eccles_n 5.1_o keep_v thy_o foot_n when_o thou_o come_v into_o the_o sanctuary_n of_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v a_o usual_a custom_n among_o the_o jew_n according_a to_o the_o fashion_n of_o those_o eastern_a country_n to_o signify_v their_o reverence_n in_o a_o sacred_a place_n by_o put_v off_o their_o sandal_n before_o they_o enter_v that_o they_o may_v not_o profane_v or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o render_v common_a by_o a_o defilement_n a_o holy_a place_n or_o what_o be_v separate_v from_o vulgar_a use_n to_o such_o as_o be_v sacred_a and_o relate_v unto_o god_n from_o whence_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v that_o injunction_n more_o ancient_a than_o this_o text_n pull_v off_o thy_o shoe_n from_o off_o thy_o foot_n for_o the_o place_n whereon_o thou_o stand_v be_v holy_a ground_n exod._n 3.5_o the_o place_n be_v before_z mean_v and_o inconsiderable_a a_o toft_a of_o ground_n on_o which_o bush_n grow_v yet_o because_o god_n consecrate_v it_o by_o his_o own_o presence_n make_v it_o holy_a for_o divine_a office_n to_o give_v moses_n his_o commission_n and_o to_o declare_v his_o law_n therefore_o the_o sign_n of_o reverence_n be_v to_o be_v use_v there_o and_o external_a demonstration_n of_o devotion_n to_o be_v exhibit_v now_o this_o particular_a action_n of_o make_v bare_a the_o foot_n be_v a_o outward_a testimony_n of_o respect_n in_o those_o country_n where_o this_o be_v command_v it_o sufficient_o instruct_v all_o subsequent_a posterity_n of_o man_n that_o external_a sign_n of_o humility_n and_o submission_n must_v be_v give_v in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o deity_n especial_o such_o in_o which_o we_o pretend_v to_o converse_v with_o he_o and_o in_o those_o place_n that_o be_v devote_v to_o his_o honour_n and_o since_o divers_a country_n use_v distinct_a mode_n of_o reverence_n and_o respect_n according_a to_o their_o customary_a signification_n and_o acceptance_n as_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o japan_n salute_v by_o pull_v off_o the_o shoe_n when_o we_o do_v the_o same_o by_o pull_v off_o our_o hat_n and_o uncover_v our_o head_n we_o may_v therefore_o fair_o conclude_v that_o if_o solomon_n in_o the_o forecited_a text_n have_v speak_v to_o person_n use_v to_o our_o custom_n and_o subject_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o our_o nation_n he_o will_v have_v say_v pull_v off_o thy_o hat_n when_o thou_o go_v to_o the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o be_v more_o ready_a to_o hear_v than_o to_o give_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n for_o they_o consider_v not_o that_o they_o do_v evil_a and_o then_o the_o inference_n from_o this_o will_v be_v that_o we_o ought_v in_o all_o place_n dedicate_v to_o god_n on_o which_o his_o name_n and_o honour_n be_v inscribe_v where_o we_o pretend_v to_o offer_v our_o christian_a sacrifice_n to_o testify_v the_o inward_a devotion_n of_o our_o mind_n by_o the_o outward_a
scab_n who_o start_v in_o their_o sleep_n as_o if_o they_o have_v get_v bug_n about_o they_o and_o not_o only_o delight_v themselves_o in_o dream_n but_o greedy_o impose_v the_o notion_n of_o their_o pillow_n and_o the_o dictate_v of_o their_o disturb_a body_n on_o other_o when_o upon_o a_o more_o strict_a enquiry_n they_o may_v just_o attribute_v all_o to_o fancy_n and_o the_o most_o unaccountable_a imagination_n if_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o our_o faith_n certain_o be_v not_o now_o less_o precious_a nor_o ought_v it_o to_o be_v attend_v with_o inferior_a regard_n howsoever_o it_o may_v be_v despise_v by_o the_o ignorant_a or_o profane_a nor_o must_v the_o argument_n of_o the_o council_n be_v less_o value_v but_o more_o since_o this_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n in_o propagate_a false_a doctrine_n together_o with_o schism_n and_o rebellion_n too_o in_o extempore_o prayer_n be_v mix_v with_o so_o much_o pride_n in_o the_o deliverer_n and_o so_o easy_o work_v upon_o the_o melt_a and_o ductile_a judgement_n of_o the_o hearer_n that_o both_o be_v deceive_v if_o they_o be_v not_o a_o little_a knavish_a and_o when_o matter_n be_v come_v to_o this_o pass_n i_o can_v conclude_v no_o less_o than_o that_o if_o this_o be_v permit_v the_o blind_a will_n still_o lead_v the_o blind_a till_o we_o all_o fall_v together_o into_o the_o ditch_n when_o error_n and_o mistake_n must_v lead_v the_o multitude_n and_o triumphant_o captivate_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o simple_a which_o every_o where_o be_v the_o great_a number_n but_o give_v i_o leave_v far_o to_o recommend_v one_o consideration_n more_o against_o this_o extempore_o and_o rash_a way_n of_o public_a prayer_n which_o seem_v to_o render_v it_o unworthy_a of_o the_o deity_n as_o much_o as_o unbecoming_a man_n who_o yet_o pretend_v to_o consider_v in_o all_o thing_n but_o this_o and_o that_o be_v because_o when_o man_n offer_v to_o the_o great_a majesty_n of_o the_o universe_n such_o unconsidered_a and_o unpremeditated_a devotion_n they_o demonstrate_v to_o the_o world_n that_o there_o be_v but_o little_a awe_n and_o dread_n upon_o their_o mind_n of_o that_o greatness_n and_o power_n of_o he_o to_o who_o they_o make_v their_o address_n and_o it_o must_v cause_v stranger_n to_o their_o religion_n on_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o god_n who_o they_o worship_v either_o do_v not_o regard_v what_o they_o offer_v or_o else_o have_v give_v they_o a_o large_a liberty_n to_o talk_v to_o he_o in_o what_o manner_n they_o please_v without_o danger_n or_o punishment_n to_o any_o of_o they_o and_o what_o a_o god_n he_o will_v then_o be_v conclude_v to_o be_v be_v obvious_a to_o every_o one_o consideration_n and_o inference_n what_o will_v a_o heathen_a say_v in_o this_o case_n but_o that_o if_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o god_n introduce_v religion_n into_o the_o world_n these_o man_n have_v no_o fear_n banish_v religion_n and_o the_o god_n together_o for_o can_v that_o person_n own_o the_o christian_n god_n who_o in_o public_a evidence_n so_o little_a fear_n and_o reverence_n to_o he_o can_v he_o dread_v the_o displeasure_n of_o his_o prince_n or_o any_o other_o person_n with_o who_o he_o converse_v who_o value_v not_o what_o he_o say_v to_o he_o neither_o regard_v the_o method_n or_o significancy_n of_o his_o word_n or_o the_o phrase_n by_o which_o he_o represent_v his_o mind_n and_o can_v any_o man_n who_o allow_v himself_o time_n to_o retire_v and_o consider_v with_o nothing_o but_o his_o own_o thought_n about_o he_o conjecture_n or_o be_v positive_a in_o affirm_v that_o any_o dread_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n have_v make_v due_a impression_n upon_o such_o mind_n which_o determine_v their_o spirit_n to_o their_o own_o tongue_n speak_v sudden_a and_o unpremeditated_a language_n to_o he_o this_o must_v of_o necessity_n very_o often_o at_o least_o be_v rash_a and_o unadvised_a not_o fit_a to_o be_v present_v to_o so_o great_a a_o god_n as_o all_o describe_v jehovah_n to_o be_v because_o it_o will_v very_o frequent_o be_v accompany_v with_o a_o indecency_n of_o phrase_n unsoundness_n of_o expression_n or_o at_o least_o a_o immethodical_a loose_a composure_n he_o that_o do_v but_o send_v a_o message_n to_o another_o especial_o if_o he_o be_v place_v some_o step_n above_o he_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o regard_v the_o person_n of_o he_o to_o who_o his_o errant_n be_v direct_v and_o to_o mind_v the_o main_a business_n which_o he_o intend_v how_o strange_o be_v he_o concern_v if_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o importance_n to_o inform_v his_o messenger_n so_o well_o in_o the_o affair_n that_o after_o he_o have_v invent_v the_o most_o apt_a and_o proper_a expression_n he_o can_v think_v on_o that_o may_v comport_v with_o the_o quality_n nay_o the_o very_a humour_n of_o the_o person_n to_o who_o he_o send_v and_o have_v once_o deliver_v they_o to_o his_o own_o servant_n or_o another_o how_o frequent_o will_v he_o call_v he_o back_o again_o to_o re_fw-mi inform_v he_o that_o the_o weight_n of_o his_o business_n may_v not_o suffer_v diminution_n by_o any_o light_n or_o unbecoming_a word_n that_o the_o messenger_n may_v not_o spoil_v his_o design_n or_o the_o least_o failure_n in_o expression_n or_o behaviour_n obstruct_v a_o compliance_n and_o shall_v mankind_n who_o be_v so_o cautious_a in_o secular_a affair_n have_v very_o little_a or_o no_o regard_n to_o the_o language_n in_o which_o they_o utter_v their_o want_n and_o petition_n unto_o the_o great_a god_n in_o who_o we_o live_v and_o move_v and_o have_v our_o being_n from_o who_o also_o we_o receive_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o perpetual_a subsistence_n nay_o when_o we_o be_v beg_v from_o he_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v of_o a_o most_o great_a and_o everlasting_a concernment_n to_o we_o which_o if_o we_o do_v not_o obtain_v we_o be_v ruin_v and_o damn_v to_o all_o eternity_n in_o those_o affair_n that_o we_o manage_v with_o man_n about_o which_o we_o be_v so_o very_o solicitous_a the_o great_a evil_n that_o can_v befall_v we_o by_o any_o fail_n or_o unfortunate_a miscarriage_n can_v consist_v only_o in_o a_o prejudice_n to_o our_o estate_n damage_n to_o our_o health_n a_o blot_n to_o our_o reputation_n a_o abatement_n of_o our_o pleasure_n and_o sensual_a satisfaction_n or_o at_o most_o it_o can_v but_o put_v a_o period_n to_o our_o life_n and_o cut_v the_o thread_n which_o in_o a_o few_o day_n will_v grow_v rot_v and_o break_v all_o which_o thing_n if_o we_o do_v escape_v for_o that_o present_a season_n in_o which_o we_o be_v in_o danger_n we_o be_v but_o for_o a_o little_a space_n reprieve_v because_o they_o will_v sudden_o perish_v of_o themselves_o when_o the_o fatal_a hour_n snatch_v we_o from_o they_o and_o death_n summon_v we_o to_o the_o great_a tribunal_n and_o shall_v we_o think_v it_o reasonable_a to_o be_v so_o careful_a and_o big_a with_o consideration_n in_o the_o managery_n of_o these_o low_a concern_v among_o man_n that_o our_o secular_a wish_n may_v obtain_v their_o end_n and_o yet_o be_v so_o vain_a and_o negligent_a in_o relation_n to_o the_o welfare_n of_o our_o immortal_a soul_n when_o we_o petition_v the_o great_a disposer_n of_o all_o thing_n for_o such_o favour_n which_o be_v so_o important_a to_o we_o that_o if_o we_o fail_v of_o their_o possession_n when_o we_o come_v to_o die_v as_o certain_o we_o must_v we_o shall_v then_o exchange_v our_o abode_n in_o this_o world_n for_o such_o a_o torment_n as_o be_v unexpressible_a and_o yet_o shall_v never_o that_o we_o know_v of_o admit_v of_o a_o end_n or_o relaxation_n certain_o such_o man_n can_v have_v little_a dread_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n who_o manage_v their_o address_n to_o this_o supreme_a be_v with_o such_o strange_a rashness_n and_o inconsideration_n especial_o when_o their_o petition_n include_v the_o great_a concernment_n of_o their_o own_o and_o other_o soul_n and_o be_v offer_v to_o that_o almighty_a power_n which_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o grant_v their_o desire_n this_o plain_o argue_v that_o neither_o the_o value_n of_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o other_o be_v much_o esteem_v or_o regard_v by_o they_o be_v not_o rash_a with_o thy_o mouth_n say_v solomon_n and_o let_v not_o thy_o heart_n he_o hasty_a to_o utter_v any_o thing_n before_o god_n for_o god_n be_v in_o heaven_n and_o thou_o on_o earth_n therefore_o let_v thy_o word_n be_v few_o eccl._n 5.2_o and_o if_o this_o text_n by_o a_o narrow_a and_o subtle_a interpretation_n shall_v be_v restrain_v to_o vow_n only_o yet_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o thing_n will_v be_v as_o prevalent_a in_o prayer_n when_o man_n on_o earth_n speak_v to_o the_o great_a god_n in_o heaven_n for_o the_o distance_n will_v be_v still_o the_o same_o betwixt_o we_o and_o our_o contempt_n and_o his_o revenge_n no_o far_o off_o we_o must_v not_o therefore_o be_v rash_a in_o this_o
neither_o especial_o when_o we_o reflect_v on_o the_o meanness_n of_o ourselves_o and_o the_o greatness_n of_o that_o majesty_n to_o who_o we_o address_v and_o consider_v well_o that_o reverential_a fear_n and_o awful_a tremble_a that_o become_v those_o who_o worship_n at_o his_o footstool_n who_o have_v life_n and_o death_n at_o his_o disposal_n if_o any_o thing_n require_v a_o thoughtful_a consideration_n certain_o our_o prayer_n may_v command_v it_o from_o we_o nay_o suppose_v he_o who_o assume_v the_o title_n of_o a_o gift_a man_n to_o have_v the_o quick_a conception_n and_o the_o most_o voluble_a tongue_n that_o any_o among_o the_o numerous_a race_n of_o adam_n can_v be_v presume_v to_o be_v endow_v with_o yet_o consider_v too_o that_o the_o disposition_n and_o activity_n of_o man_n mind_n be_v very_o obsequious_a to_o the_o temperament_n of_o their_o body_n that_o this_o often_o alter_v with_o the_o weather_n and_o distemper_n create_v such_o change_n in_o they_o that_o a_o man_n who_o be_v one_o day_n lively_a and_o brisk_a have_v his_o apprehension_n quick_a j_o his_o conception_n nimble_a his_o judgement_n clear_a and_o do_v all_o thing_n with_o a_o sprightly_a fancy_n a_o ready_a invention_n and_o utter_v all_o with_o very_o neat_a full_a and_o significant_a expression_n yet_o perhaps_o on_o the_o morrow_n or_o oftentimes_o the_o same_o day_n this_o ingenious_a person_n be_v dull_a and_o unactive_a his_o faculty_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n forsake_v he_o as_o if_o his_o soul_n be_v earth_v in_o some_o thick_a matter_n or_o be_v about_o to_o leave_v its_o habitation_n i_o say_v when_o we_o conclude_v such_o change_n possible_a as_o all_o know_v it_o by_o their_o own_o experience_n we_o must_v also_o yield_v that_o if_o the_o time_n of_o prayer_n than_o happen_v rashness_n and_o indecency_n must_v frequent_o attend_v the_o matter_n method_n and_o phrase_n too_o of_o those_o who_o utter_v their_o unpremeditated_a invention_n but_o beside_o these_o indisposition_n of_o our_o body_n which_o affect_v our_o mind_n the_o care_n and_o accident_n which_o raise_v commotion_n whilst_o we_o remain_v in_o this_o world_n that_o relate_v to_o oeconomy_n trade_n and_o converse_v with_o other_o become_v such_o as_o unsettle_v our_o mind_n and_o render_v our_o thought_n volatile_a and_o unfixed_a so_o that_o our_o soul_n be_v not_o in_o temper_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n but_o be_v rage_a and_o foam_v like_o the_o sea_n in_o a_o storm_n our_o conception_n and_o thought_n become_v as_o nimble_a as_o the_o swift_a arrow_n we_o shoot_v at_o one_o mark_n and_o hit_v upon_o another_o and_o hasten_v from_o the_o first_o object_n to_o a_o second_o and_o when_o we_o be_v in_o this_o condition_n like_o a_o run_a stream_n pass_v from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o how_o unfit_a we_o must_v be_v to_o keep_v our_o thought_n and_o conception_n to_o any_o one_o theme_n to_o invent_v matter_n and_o suitable_a word_n to_o express_v it_o in_o any_o person_n that_o will_v allow_v himself_o time_n to_o consider_v may_v easy_o determine_v without_o any_o assistance_n from_o another_o now_o private_a prayer_n it_o be_v true_a may_v be_v defer_v till_o our_o trouble_n and_o distemper_n be_v over_o and_o time_n or_o physic_n have_v reduce_v our_o mind_n to_o their_o former_a consistency_n by_o withdraw_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o indisposition_n and_o distraction_n but_o our_o public_a devotion_n be_v necessary_o appoint_v at_o certain_a time_n and_o season_n can_v admit_v such_o prudential_a remedy_n and_o then_o perhaps_o the_o hour_n of_o prayer_n in_o a_o large_a congregation_n may_v come_v upon_o our_o gift_a man_n when_o they_o have_v these_o trouble_n fit_n or_o disease_n upon_o they_o and_o what_o will_v be_v the_o consequence_n of_o these_o thing_n one_o that_o have_v but_o half_a a_o eye_n may_v discern_v for_o the_o people_n must_v either_o be_v open_o dismiss_v without_o any_o public_a service_n at_o all_o or_o they_o must_v offer_v unto_o god_n what_o be_v unfit_a to_o be_v present_v unto_o man_n and_o all_o must_v suffer_v for_o the_o personal_a infirmity_n of_o one_o man_n but_o this_o do_v not_o happen_v among_o those_o who_o use_v a_o form_n and_o liturgy_n prepare_v for_o they_o because_o a_o minister_n although_o something_o indispose_v may_v read_v it_o before_o the_o people_n and_o though_o his_o own_o mind_n may_v be_v ruffle_v and_o discompose_v yet_o the_o people_n if_o they_o please_v may_v be_v affectionate_a and_o devout_a and_o to_o confirm_v this_o charge_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o i_o think_v no_o man_n who_o in_o public_a have_v use_v extempore_o and_o conceive_v prayer_n can_v deny_v this_o observation_n upon_o his_o own_o experiment_n so_o i_o have_v often_o in_o the_o late_a time_n and_o since_o too_o hear_v person_n who_o be_v addict_v to_o this_o extempore_o delusion_n begin_v their_o address_n to_o god_n almighty_a methodical_o and_o well_o whilst_o they_o have_v be_v inform_v he_o what_o he_o be_v and_o what_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o and_o yet_o the_o prayer_n before_o they_o have_v arrive_v at_o the_o conclusion_n either_o through_o weariness_n of_o invention_n or_o some_o other_o infirmity_n have_v be_v fraught_v not_o only_o with_o weakness_n and_o indiscretion_n but_o with_o what_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n worse_o unless_o mystical_a nonsense_n may_v demonstrate_v inspiration_n and_o turn_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n so_o long_o that_o the_o first_o half_a sentence_n be_v forget_v and_o have_v nothing_o in_o the_o end_n to_o join_v to_o it_o become_v a_o ornament_n to_o a_o petition_n now_o what_o awe_n and_o dread_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n can_v possess_v such_o man_n who_o present_v to_o he_o such_o impertinent_a uncivil_a and_o nonsensical_a prayer_n nay_o how_o suitable_a such_o deportment_n be_v to_o the_o god_n who_o we_o all_o pretend_v to_o worship_n i_o willing_o leave_v to_o all_o sober_a and_o wise_a man_n serious_o to_o consider_v and_o i_o hope_v the_o adversary_n to_o our_o establish_a method_n of_o address_v ourselves_o to_o god_n in_o public_a will_v never_o so_o far_o desert_n themselves_o nor_o depart_v from_o their_o own_o policy_n and_o craft_n in_o provoke_v any_o of_o our_o church_n to_o instance_n in_o particular_n since_o they_o well_o know_v that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o enough_o evidence_n to_o be_v have_v i_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o person_n who_o be_v account_v a_o man_n of_o no_o mean_a gift_n before_o major_a weir_n staff_n blossom_v who_o when_o he_o have_v a_o view_n of_o his_o own_o prayer_n take_v by_o another_o from_o his_o own_o mouth_n on_o a_o fastday_n will_v not_o believe_v without_o great_a difficulty_n that_o he_o ever_o utter_v it_o but_o when_o he_o be_v convince_v by_o such_o a_o testimony_n as_o he_o can_v not_o with_o any_o modesty_n or_o reason_n refuse_v he_o be_v present_o abash_v and_o for_o the_o future_a betake_v himself_o to_o a_o safe_a method_n however_o if_o man_n consider_v what_o have_v be_v say_v upon_o this_o point_n that_o extravagancy_n of_o this_o nature_n almost_o necessary_a to_o extempore_o prayer_n can_v possible_o be_v suitable_a to_o the_o great_a god_n nor_o any_o way_n comport_v with_o his_o nature_n and_o attribute_n who_o be_v a_o be_v infinite_a in_o glory_n and_o perfection_n the_o mean_a person_n and_o the_o low_a capacity_n may_v reasonable_o determine_v and_o without_o a_o prompter_n easy_o judge_v in_o this_o affair_n chap._n fourteen_o i_o shall_v now_o go_v on_o to_o a_o three_o argument_n against_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o separatist_n as_o be_v unsuitable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n their_o own_o dependence_n on_o he_o who_o they_o adore_v and_o the_o infinite_a disproportion_n betwixt_o the_o deity_n and_o themselves_o because_o they_o be_v frequent_o fill_v with_o tautology_n and_o vain_a repetition_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n can_v be_v question_v by_o any_o that_o have_v be_v strict_a or_o loose_v observer_n of_o those_o crude_a and_o indigested_a prayer_n which_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o these_o extempore_o devotionist_n who_o have_v undertake_v thus_o to_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o other_o what_o ever_o form_n they_o may_v reserve_v for_o themselves_o but_o our_o bless_a saviour_n give_v a_o most_o grave_a and_o serious_a caution_n to_o those_o who_o be_v admit_v to_o present_a homage_n and_o worship_n to_o the_o great_a god_n who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o we_o all_o when_o you_o pray_v say_v he_o use_v not_o vain_a repetition_n as_o the_o heathen_a do_v matth._n 6.7_o and_o though_o christ_n may_v speak_v syriack_n at_o the_o delivery_n yet_o the_o evangelist_n from_o who_o we_o receive_v the_o prohibition_n who_o language_n become_v the_o original_a unto_o we_o by_o who_o also_o our_o saviour_n word_n and_o action_n be_v convey_v to_o posterity_n have_v write_v in_o greek_a we_o must_v
prohibition_n of_o vain_a repetition_n this_o will_v not_o conclude_v against_o the_o repetition_n of_o some_o prayer_n and_o petition_n in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o our_o church_n because_o they_o be_v use_v either_o in_o divers_a service_n which_o ancient_o have_v their_o different_a and_o successive_a season_n allow_v they_o or_o in_o the_o same_o upon_o some_o new_a and_o emergent_a occasion_n be_v place_v at_o the_o end_n of_o divers_a reading_n and_o where_o opportunity_n and_o reason_n present_v themselves_o for_o return_v to_o the_o same_o supplication_n and_o thanksgiving_n and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o god_n delight_v in_o the_o variation_n of_o phrase_n where_o the_o reason_n and_o matter_n of_o prayer_n and_o praise_n be_v still_o the_o same_o nor_o any_o cause_n why_o we_o shall_v endeavour_v it_o unless_o it_o be_v to_o show_v our_o copiousness_n of_o language_n or_o to_o tickle_v the_o ear_n of_o a_o waver_a multitude_n which_o be_v always_o too_o much_o give_v to_o change_v these_o divers_a service_n and_o intermix_v reading_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o repetition_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o invocation_n of_o the_o person_n in_o the_o trinity_n apart_o and_o be_v deficient_a in_o all_o our_o prayer_n we_o supply_v our_o imperfection_n by_o one_o of_o divine_a authority_n and_o composure_n which_o be_v more_o complete_a and_o full_a which_o as_o often_o as_o we_o pray_v we_o be_v command_v to_o use_v and_o indeed_o our_o lord_n prayer_n be_v as_o salt_n to_o season_v our_o sacrifice_n lest_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v acceptable_a to_o the_o nostril_n of_o he_o to_o who_o all_o our_o devotion_n be_v direct_v and_o till_o the_o 118th_o and_o 136th_o psalm_n be_v expunge_v from_o the_o sacred_a canon_n the_o force_n of_o a_o objection_n which_o be_v raise_v upon_o no_o strong_a a_o foundation_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o throw_v down_o or_o batter_v the_o ancient_a order_n and_o uniformity_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o although_o man_n may_v instance_n in_o repetition_n in_o our_o service_n they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o nature_n with_o the_o tautology_n of_o the_o heathen_a nor_o such_o vain_a reduplication_n as_o our_o saviour_n prohibit_v no_o nor_o yet_o to_o be_v parallel_v with_o the_o extravagancy_n of_o their_o prayer_n against_o which_o i_o have_v here_o presume_v to_o argue_v because_o we_o be_v make_v with_o judgement_n and_o due_a reason_n for_o they_o the_o matter_n be_v considerable_a and_o the_o return_v not_o more_o frequent_a than_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o same_o prayer_n and_o praise_n ought_v to_o be_v but_o they_o be_v needless_a because_o they_o admit_v not_o the_o same_o justification_n be_v the_o effect_n of_o barrenness_n and_o want_v of_o invention_n or_o else_o of_o carelessness_n and_o inadvertency_n and_o serve_v only_a to_o supply_v the_o room_n of_o matter_n and_o sense_n with_o airy_a word_n and_o empty_a sound_n and_z in_o the_o place_n of_o true_a and_o substantial_a harmony_n they_o substitute_v indecency_n and_o jar_a discord_n chap._n xv._o i_o proceed_v now_o to_o a_o four_o reason_n that_o we_o have_v against_o the_o prayer_n of_o our_o extempore_o separatist_n and_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v unsuitable_a to_o the_o greatness_n and_o glory_n of_o that_o god_n who_o they_o pretend_v to_o seek_v and_o that_o be_v because_o they_o be_v unprofitable_o long_a and_o tedious_o protract_v in_o their_o public_a assembly_n so_o that_o some_o who_o have_v not_o their_o whole_a sermon_n ready_a have_v spend_v the_o sand_n in_o the_o hourglass_n that_o measure_v they_o by_o this_o knack_n of_o enlarge_a their_o extempore_o prayer_n in_o the_o pulpit_n adventure_v to_o speak_v to_o god_n without_o premeditation_n when_o they_o dare_v not_o so_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n but_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v at_o present_a which_o yet_o i_o know_v to_o have_v be_v too_o true_a we_o usual_o petition_v prince_n and_o person_n of_o great_a quality_n in_o as_o brief_a and_o compendious_a a_o form_n as_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o desire_n be_v capable_a of_o that_o it_o may_v be_v comprehend_v within_o as_o narrow_a a_o compass_n as_o significant_a and_o full_a expression_n can_v represent_v it_o and_o shall_v we_o suppose_v the_o great_a god_n to_o be_v of_o a_o less_o majesty_n than_o a_o earthly_a king_n or_o less_o sagacious_a and_o apprehensive_a or_o not_o to_o merit_v as_o much_o respect_n as_o prince_n and_o governor_n who_o be_v his_o deputy_n and_o vicegerent_n will_v not_o the_o same_o and_o great_a reason_n too_o that_o incline_v we_o to_o make_v brief_a petition_n to_o the_o advance_a and_o understanding_n person_n in_o this_o world_n prevail_v with_o we_o to_o use_v a_o decent_a brevity_n and_o curtness_n in_o our_o language_n when_o we_o make_v our_o request_n know_v to_o god_n especial_o since_o we_o all_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o foresee_v the_o want_n of_o the_o world_n his_o providence_n be_v over_o all_o his_o work_n have_v infinite_a knowledge_n so_o that_o nothing_o can_v escape_v he_o and_o such_o a_o essential_a and_o perfect_a goodness_n that_o there_o be_v not_o need_v of_o much_o thetorick_n to_o incline_v he_o to_o relieve_v the_o necessity_n of_o mankind_n when_o with_o due_a reverence_n and_o hearty_a affection_n they_o call_v upon_o his_o name_n and_o now_o under_o the_o gospel_n through_o the_o mediation_n of_o his_o son_n which_o cause_v his_o very_a bowel_n to_o yearn_v he_o that_o know_v the_o secret_n of_o man_n heart_n need_v not_o many_o word_n to_o inform_v he_o of_o the_o thing_n they_o want_v and_o what_o will_v be_v most_o convenient_a for_o they_o this_o be_v the_o argument_n which_o our_o saviour_n urge_v against_o inordinate_a care_n for_o the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n even_o because_o our_o heavenly_a father_n know_v that_o we_o have_v need_n of_o these_o thing_n matth._n 6.32_o and_o solomon_n in_o the_o forementioned_a text_n eccles_n 5._o advise_v man_n that_o because_o there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o distance_n and_o disproportion_n betwixt_o god_n and_o themselves_o therefore_o when_o they_o speak_v to_o he_o their_o word_n shall_v be_v few_o and_o he_o back_v his_o counsel_n with_o this_o argumentative_a similitude_n that_o as_o multitude_n of_o business_n make_v man_n subject_a to_o unquietness_n and_o dream_n so_o a_o fool_n voice_n be_v know_v by_o a_o multitude_n of_o word_n as_o if_o that_o be_v the_o inconsiderate_a sacrifice_n of_o fool_n which_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o in_o the_o first_o verse_n when_o exuberant_a expression_n make_v up_o the_o oblation_n he_o that_o have_v make_v but_o slender_a observation_n may_v easy_o discern_v that_o the_o most_o glorious_a god_n of_o all_o the_o world_n take_v great_a care_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o his_o worship_n to_o difference_n it_o from_o the_o heathen_a idolatry_n and_o will_v never_o permit_v their_o grove_n to_o have_v a_o communion_n with_o his_o sanctuary_n now_o it_o be_v a_o common_a custom_n among_o they_o to_o draw_v out_o their_o prayer_n into_o a_o tedious_a as_o well_o as_o unprofitable_a length_n though_o they_o do_v it_o by_o reiterate_v the_o same_o expression_n upon_o no_o new_a reason_n at_o all_o but_o because_o of_o the_o false_a notion_n of_o god_n which_o they_o have_v imbibe_v that_o make_v uncouth_a impression_n on_o their_o understanding_n for_o they_o conjecture_v that_o by_o how_o much_o the_o loud_o their_o voice_n be_v extend_v with_o so_o much_o the_o more_o certainty_n will_v their_o god_n hear_v they_o and_o by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o frequent_o the_o name_n of_o their_o god_n and_o their_o petition_n be_v repeat_v so_o much_o the_o deep_a impression_n will_v they_o make_v to_o cause_v their_o attention_n incline_v their_o will_n and_o make_v they_o to_o remember_v to_o return_v down_o supply_n to_o they_o now_o such_o reason_n be_v very_o unsuitable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o christian_n god_n who_o understand_v all_o thing_n by_o a_o instantaneous_a intuition_n and_o can_v possible_o forget_v to_o be_v gracious_a he_o need_v not_o any_o thing_n to_o refresh_v his_o memory_n much_o less_o vain_a and_o prohibit_v repetition_n it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o it_o be_v very_o disagreeable_a to_o his_o glorious_a attribute_n for_o man_n to_o pelt_v he_o with_o a_o long_a tedious_a continue_a prayer_n beyond_o what_o be_v fit_a to_o represent_v our_o want_n inflame_v our_o zeal_n and_o raise_v our_o affection_n to_o a_o decent_a height_n to_o demonstrate_v our_o humility_n and_o dependence_n on_o he_o and_o to_o quicken_v our_o devotion_n to_o a_o be_v so_o transcendent_o great_a and_o discern_a hence_o our_o saviour_n forbid_v the_o fruitless_a tautology_n of_o the_o heathen_a use_v in_o their_o solemn_a and_o most_o earnest_a devotion_n command_v his_o disciple_n not_o to_o be_v like_o they_o as_o well_o because_o they_o think_v to_o be_v hear_v
for_o their_o much_o speakinng_a as_o because_o the_o god_n who_o christian_n be_v direct_v to_o worship_n know_v the_o thing_n they_o have_v need_n of_o before_o they_o ask_v he_o and_o then_o he_o direct_v they_o how_o to_o pray_v in_o a_o short_a and_o comprehensive_a form_n which_o all_o his_o disciple_n be_v to_o use_v and_o imitate_v matth._n 6._o but_o yet_o as_o st._n austin_n say_v vid._n epist_n 86._o &_o 118._o god_n will_v be_v entreat_v he_o will_v be_v as_o it_o be_v compel_v by_o motive_n and_o argument_n and_o overcome_v by_o a_o certain_a importunity_n this_o be_v a_o good_a violence_n which_o our_o saviour_n himself_o have_v encourage_v man_n to_o by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o importunate_a widow_n luke_o 18._o the_o design_n of_o which_o parable_n as_o he_o inform_v we_o be_v to_o encourage_v man_n always_o to_o pray_v and_o not_o to_o faint_v the_o same_o thing_n we_o be_v also_o command_v to_o do_v in_o the_o apostle_n writing_n where_o we_o be_v bid_v to_o continue_v in_o prayer_n and_o to_o watch_v in_o the_o same_o and_o to_o persevere_v in_o this_o duty_n and_o the_o like_a which_o injunction_n and_o exhortation_n must_v at_o least_o obtain_v so_o far_o as_o to_o bear_v up_o our_o heart_n and_o expectation_n in_o our_o prayer_n and_o rebuke_v all_o despond_v thought_n that_o so_o when_o we_o petition_v our_o maker_n for_o any_o blessing_n that_o may_v relieve_v our_o necessity_n we_o may_v not_o be_v dishearten_v by_o reason_n of_o any_o or_o his_o most_o wise_a protraction_n nor_o be_v discourage_v or_o discontent_v to_o a_o omission_n of_o our_o devotion_n because_o we_o have_v not_o a_o sudden_a return_n to_o our_o prayer_n but_o that_o we_o may_v still_o repeat_v our_o duty_n and_o be_v the_o more_o instant_n by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o we_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v deny_v unless_o we_o receive_v a_o apparent_a signal_n of_o god_n displeasure_n either_o at_o the_o matter_n unseasonableness_n or_o manner_n of_o our_o address_n which_o because_o we_o can_v easy_o understand_v especial_o if_o upon_o examination_n of_o the_o reason_n ground_n and_o rule_n of_o prayer_n draw_v from_o the_o object_n to_o who_o our_o devotion_n be_v direct_v from_o the_o condition_n of_o ourselves_o who_o be_v petitioner_n or_o from_o precept_n exhortation_n and_o example_n too_o which_o we_o find_v exhibit_v in_o sacred_a writ_n our_o judgement_n correspond_v to_o our_o petition_n and_o upon_o scrutiny_n we_o can_v find_v no_o fault_n in_o they_o nor_o any_o defect_n in_o our_o utterance_n or_o deportment_n there_o be_v no_o way_n therefore_o leave_v but_o in_o all_o our_o prayer_n to_o imitate_v he_o who_o be_v the_o most_o religious_a man_n and_o the_o best_a composer_n of_o petition_n to_o god_n that_o ever_o the_o world_n yet_o see_v even_o jesus_n himself_o the_o mediator_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n who_o when_o he_o be_v in_o his_o dreadful_a agony_n be_v sensible_a of_o what_o he_o then_o feel_v and_o fear_v also_o what_o he_o must_v endure_v when_o fix_v upon_o the_o cross_n pray_v that_o this_o cup_n may_v pass_v from_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v with_o submission_n to_o his_o father_n will_n which_o he_o then_o signify_v in_o word_n as_o plain_a as_o they_o be_v full_a of_o humility_n nevertheless_o not_o as_o i_o will_v but_o as_o thou_o will_v matth._n 26.39_o but_o all_o this_o may_v yet_o be_v obey_v without_o any_o long_a and_o tedious_o continue_a prayer_n where_o protraction_n in_o the_o speaker_n too_o frequent_o render_v it_o ridiculous_a and_o bring_v a_o indisposition_n and_o weariness_n to_o most_o of_o the_o devotionist_n for_o man_n may_v bestow_v not_o only_a day_n but_o night_n too_o in_o this_o most_o great_a and_o solemn_a duty_n of_o prayer_n in_o which_o by_o obey_v the_o inference_n of_o reason_n and_o the_o injunction_n of_o religion_n we_o enjoy_v so_o large_a and_o comfortable_a a_o privilege_n by_o run_v through_o a_o short_a course_n of_o devotion_n consist_v of_o many_o collect_v and_o premeditate_a form_n which_o may_v include_v the_o matter_n of_o all_o our_o petition_n and_o after_o little_a interval_n of_o refreshment_n return_v with_o earnestness_n to_o the_o same_o again_o for_o prayer_n certain_o become_v our_o duty_n and_o our_o dependence_n upon_o god_n prompt_v we_o to_o it_o more_o to_o demonstrate_v our_o own_o humility_n and_o devout_a reliance_n on_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n than_o to_o inform_v he_o of_o our_o necessity_n &_o trouble_n or_o by_o our_o oratory_n to_o incline_v he_o to_o hear_v we_o and_o therefore_o that_o must_v be_v the_o best_a and_o most_o compendious_a way_n of_o worship_n by_o which_o be_v answer_v the_o great_a design_n and_o end_n of_o prayer_n and_o without_o doubt_n when_o our_o intention_n and_o affection_n be_v with_o the_o high_a ardency_n and_o most_o vehement_a desire_n employ_v in_o this_o duty_n it_o best_o demonstrate_v our_o own_o vileness_n and_o a_o modest_a confidence_n in_o and_o love_n to_o god_n now_o this_o be_v more_o vigorous_o accomplish_v when_o we_o use_v such_o method_n as_o may_v least_o weary_a and_o tire_v our_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o judge_v whether_o short_a ejaculation_n and_o brief_a collect_v intermix_v with_o some_o other_o various_a office_n accompany_v with_o some_o little_a intermission_n that_o give_v breath_n to_o and_o refresh_v the_o intention_n and_o affection_n of_o our_o mind_n be_v not_o more_o conduce_v to_o the_o expediency_n of_o this_o affair_n than_o a_o long_a continue_a and_o uninterrupted_a devotion_n for_o man_n may_v find_v if_o they_o will_v both_o try_v and_o judge_v fair_o that_o this_o latter_a way_n dull_v the_o fancy_n weaken_v the_o invention_n darken_v the_o object_n as_o the_o eye_n be_v dazzle_v with_o gaze_v too_o long_o at_o the_o sun_n and_o discompose_v the_o whole_a man_n and_o make_v we_o more_o ready_a to_o sleep_v than_o to_o pray_v but_o in_o the_o former_a method_n where_o confession_n petition_n and_o thanksgiving_n be_v excellent_o and_o orderly_o intermix_v and_o follow_v each_o other_o so_o that_o the_o entrance_n upon_o one_o be_v a_o relaxation_n from_o the_o other_o and_o we_o stay_v not_o too_o long_o at_o a_o time_n on_o either_o and_o these_o call_v upon_o we_o for_o different_a posture_n of_o our_o body_n and_o divers_a affection_n and_o transport_n of_o our_o mind_n here_o we_o receive_v ease_n and_o refreshment_n and_o consequent_o must_v needs_o be_v better_o fit_v for_o a_o long_a continuance_n without_o distraction_n than_o if_o all_o be_v put_v together_o in_o one_o uninterrupted_a chain_n of_o expression_n and_o therefore_o st._n austin_n inform_v epist_n 121._o that_o the_o egyptian_a brethren_n be_v wont_a to_o make_v very_o frequent_a prayer_n sed_fw-la eas_fw-la tamen_fw-la brevissimas_fw-la &_o raptim_fw-la quodammodo_fw-la ejaculatas_fw-la but_o they_o be_v very_o short_a and_o dart_v forth_o with_o a_o sudden_a quickness_n and_o the_o reason_n which_o he_o give_v for_o this_o be_v very_o apposite_a to_o my_o present_a argument_n lest_o the_o attention_n of_o the_o mind_n which_o be_v now_o vigilant_a and_o lift_v up_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o one_o that_o pray_v shall_v be_v dull_v and_o vanish_v by_o a_o long_a stay_n and_o more_o tedious_a continuance_n nay_o short_a prayer_n be_v compare_v to_o sharp_a dart_n that_o soon_o pierce_v the_o sky_n and_o enter_v into_o heaven_n to_o commend_v these_o st._n chrysostom_n upon_o the_o six_o of_o st._n matthew_n tell_v we_o that_o our_o lord_n in_o prohibit_v vain_a repetition_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o heathen_a seem_v to_o he_o to_o forbid_v long_a prayer_n long_o say_v he_o not_o in_o time_n but_o in_o prolixity_n of_o expression_n and_o multitude_n of_o word_n and_o indeed_o when_o we_o have_v leisure_n to_o consider_v what_o st._n austin_n say_v in_o the_o forementioned_a epistle_n hoc_fw-la negotium_fw-la plus_fw-la gemitibus_fw-la quam_fw-la sermonibus_fw-la agitur_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o prayer_n be_v make_v more_o with_o sigh_n and_o groan_n than_o in_o word_n and_o expression_n and_o that_o it_o be_v evidence_v more_o by_o weep_v with_o our_o eye_n than_o by_o breathe_v at_o our_o mouth_n we_o need_v not_o be_v so_o extreme_o fond_a of_o such_o patch_a and_o thereby_o lengthen_a prayer_n to_o a_o continue_a five_o hour_n adventure_v because_o this_o discover_v only_o a_o nimble_a invention_n with_o volubility_n of_o language_n place_v in_o a_o strong_a and_o sturdy_a body_n but_o it_o stifle_v affection_n and_o render_v watchfulness_n itself_o drowsy_a in_o those_o that_o be_v to_o join_v in_o it_o and_o keep_v he_o that_o utter_v it_o only_o awake_v because_o he_o can_v so_o well_o speak_v in_o his_o sleep_n and_o the_o whole_a when_o do_v in_o this_o manner_n demonstrate_v confidence_n but_o not_o devotion_n nay_o it_o seem_v not_o a_o little_a strange_a to_o i_o that_o the_o multitude_n shall_v be_v
in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o water_n especial_o over_o such_o fish_n as_o carry_v money_n in_o their_o mouth_n if_o they_o do_v not_o in_o plain_a term_n endeavour_v to_o make_v party_n in_o the_o church_n that_o their_o own_o may_v at_o last_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o great_a by_o whatever_o under_o the_o pretext_n of_o religion_n convey_v delight_n by_o that_o variety_n which_o please_v the_o generality_n of_o mankind_n why_o shall_v they_o not_o as_o well_o preach_v extempore_o as_o pray_v so_o in_o their_o sermon_n i_o be_o sure_a they_o be_v wont_a to_o use_v all_o the_o art_n and_o study_v that_o they_o can_v accommodate_v their_o doctrine_n and_o expression_n too_o that_o their_o pain_n may_v bear_v proportion_n to_o their_o auditory_a and_o the_o fashion_n and_o example_n of_o those_o who_o be_v in_o great_a repute_n among_o they_o and_o i_o can_v divine_v what_o may_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o this_o different_a regard_n to_o prayer_n and_o preach_v unless_o they_o have_v more_o care_n in_o those_o speech_n they_o direct_v unto_o man_n than_o they_o take_v about_o those_o which_o they_o present_v unto_o god_n for_o they_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v no_o great_a promise_n of_o a_o assistance_n from_o heaven_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o one_o than_o they_o have_v also_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o other_o do_v they_o think_v that_o text_n in_o the_o eight_o to_o the_o roman_n prove_v effectual_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n assist_v they_o in_o their_o prayer_n because_o the_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v that_o likewise_o the_o spirit_n help_v our_o infirmity_n because_o we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o as_o we_o ought_v etc._n etc._n if_o it_o be_v well_o weigh_v and_o consider_v with_o the_o context_n it_o will_v only_o evidence_n our_o saviour_n most_o earnest_a and_o wise_a intercession_n for_o we_o in_o heaven_n by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o always_o accompany_v he_o the_o support_n of_o our_o mind_n under_o the_o great_a pressure_n we_o meet_v with_o in_o this_o world_n or_o most_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v dictate_v by_o the_o spirit_n have_v give_v we_o direction_n for_o the_o proper_a head_n and_o ●●●●er_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o resolve_n still_o by_o some_o benign_a and_o secret_a influence_n which_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o describe_v to_o other_o to_o proportion_v our_o affection_n and_o elevate_v our_o mind_n to_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o concernment_n we_o pray_v for_o and_o the_o greatness_n of_o that_o majesty_n to_o who_o we_o petition_v and_o because_o if_o i_o be_v the_o great_a critic_n in_o the_o world_n i_o shall_v always_o abhor_v the_o sound_n any_o necessary_a doctrine_n upon_o the_o signification_n of_o a_o word_n in_o scripture_n which_o word_n we_o know_v as_o in_o profane_a author_n be_v frequent_o equivocal_a and_o restrain_v according_a to_o the_o compass_n of_o that_o matter_n in_o which_o they_o be_v therefore_o i_o say_v nothing_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nor_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nor_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nor_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o nor_o concern_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d neither_o but_o if_o man_n be_v resolve_v for_o end_n that_o will_v not_o serve_v they_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o which_o they_o refer_v many_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v end_v here_o to_o make_v these_o word_n against_o their_o own_o will_n in_o contradiction_n to_o the_o reason_n and_o experience_n of_o all_o think_v man_n that_o be_v not_o either_o knavish_a or_o mad_a to_o express_v a_o promise_n of_o some_o extraordinary_a assistance_n from_o the_o spirit_n now_o in_o our_o invention_n of_o matter_n and_o word_n in_o prayer_n unto_o god_n they_o may_v as_o well_o rely_v if_o they_o be_v please_v with_o such_o way_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n upon_o that_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n make_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o enable_v they_o to_o preach_v and_o write_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n john_n 16.13_o howbeit_o when_o he_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n be_v come_v he_o will_v guide_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n and_o because_o there_o be_v divine_a inspiration_n at_o the_o first_o which_o be_v necessary_a if_o god_n will_v deliver_v a_o law_n by_o the_o mouth_n or_o writing_n of_o any_o select_v out_o of_o the_o race_n of_o man_n our_o gift_a brethren_n may_v if_o they_o please_v take_v occasion_n from_o the_o 10_o of_o st._n matthew_n vers_n 19_o and_o 20_o to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n without_o premeditation_n or_o study_v and_o then_o to_o be_v sure_a we_o shall_v be_v hard_o enough_o for_o they_o since_o our_o saviour_n there_o inform_v his_o disciple_n that_o they_o need_v take_v no_o thought_n what_o or_o how_o the_o shall_v speak_v because_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v they_o in_o that_o hour_n i._n e._n when_o they_o may_v have_v occasion_n and_o he_o use_v a_o argument_n to_o raise_v and_o to_o confirm_v their_o belief_n of_o it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v say_v he_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o father_n which_o speak_v in_o you_o and_o yet_o i_o fancy_v that_o if_o our_o extempore_o man_n be_v in_o the_o same_o circumstance_n and_o put_v under_o those_o condition_n which_o this_o text_n suppose_v and_o be_v accuse_v of_o something_o capital_a before_o a_o magistrate_n they_o will_v not_o only_o study_v all_o way_n of_o clear_v themselves_o to_o avoid_v the_o punishment_n what_o ever_o at_o last_o become_v of_o the_o guilt_n and_o this_o they_o will_v endeavour_v by_o all_o the_o mean_n that_o a_o close_a consultation_n with_o their_o own_o thought_n can_v possible_o suggest_v and_o not_o only_o with_o seriousness_n prepare_v a_o answer_n to_o any_o accusation_n of_o this_o nature_n but_o i_o believe_v too_o they_o will_v condescend_v to_o advise_v with_o the_o learned_a in_o the_o law_n that_o they_o may_v if_o possible_o avoid_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o judge_n nay_o in_o such_o case_n whether_o they_o will_v fee_v bribe_n or_o make_v the_o great_a friend_n they_o can_v i_o leave_v to_o their_o own_o conscience_n and_o experience_n that_o i_o may_v say_v nothing_o of_o make_v public_a commotion_n to_o save_v themselves_o and_o as_o in_o business_n of_o this_o nature_n gift_a man_n be_v incline_v to_o think_v that_o such_o promise_n of_o assistance_n be_v only_o intend_v for_o a_o short_a time_n and_o not_o to_o reach_v this_o present_a age_n so_o though_o the_o apostle_n act_n 2._o be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n begin_v to_o speak_v with_o divers_a language_n as_o the_o spirit_n give_v they_o utterance_n they_o will_v submit_v their_o spirit_n and_o condescend_v to_o the_o contrivance_n of_o head_n of_o matter_n and_o mode_n of_o expression_n when_o they_o preach_v the_o gospel_n though_o they_o be_v to_o speak_v in_o no_o other_o than_o their_o mother_n tongue_n now_o why_o shall_v this_o great_a care_n be_v have_v in_o their_o sermon_n to_o the_o people_n when_o they_o usual_o have_v so_o slender_a a_o regard_n to_o what_o they_o utter_v in_o their_o prayer_n to_o god_n if_o there_o be_v no_o distinction_n of_o time_n and_o season_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o promise_n and_o assistance_n of_o god_n spirit_n for_o sure_o preach_v as_o well_o as_o pray_v be_v a_o ordinance_n to_o continue_v till_o the_o elect_n be_v gather_v and_o that_o will_v not_o be_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n unless_o they_o will_v affirm_v and_o give_v we_o too_o apparent_a a_o argument_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o spirit_n have_v so_o order_v matter_n that_o less_o pain_n and_o diligence_n be_v to_o be_v use_v when_o we_o address_v to_o god_n than_o when_o we_o speak_v only_o to_o the_o people_n and_o if_o any_o be_v so_o bold_a to_o talk_v thus_o i_o hate_v to_o refute_v such_o nonsense_n and_o blasphemy_n both_o together_o for_o it_o plain_o appear_v that_o such_o man_n must_v be_v liable_a to_o the_o same_o rebuke_n which_o the_o chief_a ruler_n of_o the_o jew_n receive_v from_o our_o saviour_n record_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n john_n chap._n 12.43_o who_o though_o they_o believe_v on_o he_o do_v not_o confess_v he_o because_o they_o love_v the_o praise_n of_o man_n more_o than_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o let_v their_o ear_n be_v never_o so_o much_o circumcise_v they_o render_v themselves_o opposite_a to_o the_o true_a circumcision_n who_o praise_n be_v not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n rom._n 2.29_o and_o how_o far_o such_o contrivance_n may_v comport_v with_o sincerity_n and_o be_v distant_a from_o that_o hypocrisy_n which_o have_v so_o many_o woe_n attend_v it_o i_o shall_v leave_v to_o those_o who_o be_v concern_v to_o adjust_a and_o content_v myself_o with_o that_o direction_n which_o the_o great_a author_n of_o our_o most_o excellent_a religion_n have_v
the_o conception_n of_o their_o mind_n to_o a_o utterance_n of_o our_o petition_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o it_o conclude_v indeed_o against_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o latin_a and_o justify_v our_o own_o in_o english_a as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v but_o it_o can_v neither_o strengthen_v the_o enthusiast_n nor_o detract_v from_o the_o worth_n or_o reputation_n of_o a_o well_o compose_v liturgy_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o this_o scripture_n and_o the_o real_a opposition_n which_o be_v here_o make_v of_o spirit_n to_o understanding_n and_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o appear_v plain_o from_o the_o naked_a word_n of_o the_o nineteenth_o verse_n without_o any_o paraphrase_n upon_o they_o for_o say_v the_o apostle_n i_o have_v rather_o speak_v five_o word_n with_o my_o understanding_n that_o by_o my_o voice_n i_o may_v teach_v other_o also_o than_o ten_o thousand_o word_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o though_o st._n chrysostom_n interpretation_n of_o the_o whole_a do_v not_o in_o every_o part_n agree_v with_o this_o yet_o he_o expound_v spirit_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n but_o if_o man_n will_v still_o evidence_n their_o vanity_n by_o defend_v their_o extravagancy_n by_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v be_v win_v from_o they_o as_o often_o as_o they_o have_v trump_v they_o up_o to_o the_o world_n and_o urge_v that_o in_o the_o twelve_o of_o zechariah_n where_o god_n promise_v to_o pour_v upon_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o upon_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o supplication_n etc._n etc._n they_o will_v gain_v but_o little_a countenance_n from_o hence_o for_o their_o irrational_a and_o loose_a way_n of_o worship_n though_o as_o a_o neat_a commentator_n of_o their_o own_o descant_n upon_o it_o it_o shall_v be_v pour_v out_o as_o by_o whole_a pailful_n trapp_n in_o loc_n for_o nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v from_o this_o text_n but_o that_o the_o time_n shall_v come_v in_o which_o god_n will_v by_o his_o benign_a operation_n confer_v so_o much_o favour_n to_o the_o jew_n that_o they_o who_o be_v harden_v through_o their_o own_o infidelity_n to_o the_o affront_a and_o crucify_a the_o blessed_a jesus_n shall_v so_o relent_v for_o their_o former_a wickedness_n that_o they_o will_v pray_v to_o god_n and_o petition_n for_o their_o pardon_n when_o they_o come_v to_o be_v convince_v that_o the_o very_a person_n who_o they_o put_v so_o death_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o impostor_n be_v indeed_o the_o promise_a messiah_n and_o so_o it_o no_o more_o conclude_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v promise_v under_o the_o gospel_n to_o dictate_v matter_n and_o expression_n to_o all_o those_o who_o devout_o pray_v than_o it_o prove_v all_o saint_n under_o this_o dispensation_n to_o be_v perfect_a jew_n that_o crucify_v their_o saviour_n nor_o can_v all_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a and_o latin_a in_o the_o world_n make_v either_o out_o from_o this_o text._n nay_o such_o doctrine_n can_v no_o more_o be_v found_v on_o this_o prophecy_n of_o zechariah_n than_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v also_o dictate_v matter_n and_o word_n in_o preach_v too_o and_o render_v all_o sanctify_a man_n sermon_n as_o much_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v infer_v from_o that_o promise_n in_o the_o second_o of_o joel_n where_o god_n say_v i_o will_v pour_v out_o my_o spirit_n upon_o all_o flesh_n and_o your_o son_n and_o your_o daughter_n shall_v prophesy_v since_o this_o be_v fulfil_v on_o that_o eminent_a day_n of_o pentecost_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n visible_o descend_v on_o the_o apostle_n to_o enable_v they_o to_o speak_v divers_a language_n and_o to_o work_v miracle_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o propagation_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o according_o it_o be_v limit_v by_o st._n peter_n act_n 2.16_o if_o man_n will_v still_o trifle_v with_o the_o scripture_n let_v they_o allow_v also_o woman_n to_o be_v preacher_n as_o well_o as_o man_n because_o in_o the_o promise_n it_o be_v say_v that_o daughter_n as_o well_o as_o son_n shall_v prophesy_v it_o will_v only_o as_o it_o be_v usual_a with_o some_o man_n prefer_v the_o old_a testament_n to_o the_o new_a and_o set_v a_o prophet_n and_o a_o apostle_n together_o by_o the_o ear_n that_o we_o may_v judge_v the_o advantage_n to_o which_o we_o please_v as_o he_o gratify_v either_o our_o humour_n or_o our_o interest_n but_o suppose_v our_o extempore_o man_n shall_v fly_v from_o scripture_n to_o the_o succeed_a writer_n among_o the_o christian_n as_o i_o know_v not_o but_o they_o may_v when_o they_o find_v any_o thing_n that_o make_v for_o they_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o this_o worship_n which_o we_o declaim_v against_o be_v justifiable_a by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n who_o live_v near_o the_o time_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n must_v needs_o understand_v their_o doctrine_n and_o their_o practice_n better_o than_o we_o who_o live_v in_o a_o age_n so_o far_o off_o and_o quote_v some_o passage_n from_o the_o ancient_a father_n to_o justify_v their_o extravagant_a devotion_n now_o i_o only_o reply_v 1._o we_o grant_v that_o in_o the_o first_o time_n of_o miraculous_a operation_n before_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v well_o settle_v in_o the_o world_n the_o spirit_n do_v as_o well_o dictate_v prayer_n to_o some_o for_o the_o help_n of_o other_o as_o it_o inspire_v some_o to_o deliver_v the_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o faith_n that_o they_o may_v be_v derive_v downward_o to_o posterity_n but_o all_o this_o cease_v afterward_o when_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o cease_v when_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o new_a law_n be_v complete_v and_o knowledge_n and_o part_n become_v the_o fruit_n of_o liberal_a education_n and_o the_o spirit_n co-operation_n with_o human_a industry_n 2._o that_o the_o father_n give_v no_o countenance_n to_o this_o extempore_o wild_a way_n of_o prayer_n and_o the_o late_a patron_n of_o this_o conceive_a method_n when_o they_o urge_v any_o expression_n from_o they_o be_v fain_o to_o squeeze_v a_o few_o particular_a passage_n hard_o either_o by_o a_o false_a rehearsal_n or_o else_o by_o criticise_v and_o large_a interpretation_n they_o draw_v their_o word_n off_o from_o the_o sense_n which_o the_o subject_a matter_n and_o coherence_n of_o the_o place_n do_v willing_o afford_v they_o 3._o that_o this_o way_n of_o argue_v in_o this_o affair_n be_v disclaim_v by_o a_o late_a nonconformist_a writer_n who_o be_v eminent_a both_o in_o vent_v and_o darken_n too_o these_o extempore_o prayer_n and_o almost_o as_o ancient_a as_o any_o now_o live_v in_o defend_v they_o nay_o and_o he_o have_v reason_n too_o when_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n as_o he_o say_v become_v opposite_a to_o his_o own_o experience_n but_o to_o give_v he_o his_o due_n he_o admit_v scripture_n in_o this_o controversy_n and_o will_v have_v man_n to_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o command_n for_o prayer_n in_o the_o sacred_a writing_n be_v so_o many_o law_n to_o enjoin_v their_o own_o extempore_o way_n and_o method_n yet_o though_o he_o adventure_n at_o some_o promise_n i_o can_v find_v that_o he_o meddle_v with_o the_o command_n so_o as_o to_o appropriate_v any_o one_o to_o extempore_o prayer_n though_o he_o be_v very_o good_a at_o criticism_n and_o inference_n but_o natural_a enthusiasm_n when_o rivet_v by_o custom_n skulk_v so_o within_o a_o man_n that_o though_o possess_v with_o it_o he_o do_v not_o know_v it_o and_o it_o be_v such_o another_o thing_n as_o what_o the_o vulgar_a call_v arminianism_n which_o a_o man_n may_v sometime_o be_v charge_v with_o when_o he_o yet_o plead_v not_o guilty_a as_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o another_o great_a writer_n who_o aphorism_n when_o dr._n hammond_n have_v peruse_v present_o reply_v this_o man_n be_v a_o arminian_n but_o he_o do_v not_o know_v it_o 4._o if_o any_o will_v defend_v these_o conceive_a public_a prayer_n from_o antiquity_n i_o wish_v they_o will_v also_o put_v other_o matter_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n upon_o the_o same_o trial_n and_o permit_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v also_o determine_v this_o way_n yet_o last_o these_o thing_n be_v here_o set_v down_o not_o because_o we_o have_v any_o cause_n of_o fear_n from_o what_o can_v fair_o be_v urge_v for_o extempore_o prayer_n out_o of_o any_o ancient_a author_n of_o undoubted_a credit_n the_o quotation_n have_v frequent_o be_v answer_v but_o more_o especial_o because_o they_o be_v just_a now_o explain_v in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o certain_a case_n of_o conscience_n resold_v concern_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o join_v with_o form_n of_o prayer_n in_o public_a worship_n the_o view_n of_o which_o since_o the_o composure_n of_o this_o small_a discourse_n
have_v cause_v i_o to_o omit_v some_o thing_n here_o but_o because_o there_o be_v a_o place_n usual_o quote_v out_o of_o tertullian_n apol._n cap._n 30._o that_o i_o find_v have_v be_v convey_v as_o low_a as_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o the_o sectary_n have_v get_v it_o by_o heart_n i_o shall_v present_v the_o text_n with_o the_o note_n upon_o it_o which_o be_v enough_o to_o satisfy_v reasonable_a man_n that_o they_o plain_o mistake_v the_o meaning_n of_o it_o for_o this_o father_n show_v how_o the_o christian_n pray_v for_o the_o health_n and_o safety_n of_o the_o emperor_n that_o they_o call_v on_o the_o eternal_a true_a and_o live_a god_n and_o look_v up_o to_o heaven_n with_o hand_n spread_v forth_o because_o innocent_a and_o bear_v head_v for_o that_o they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a denique_fw-la sine_fw-la monitore_fw-la quia_fw-la de_fw-la pectore_fw-la oramus_fw-la pro_fw-la omnibus_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la vitam_fw-la illis_fw-la prolixam_fw-la imperium_fw-la seourum_fw-la etc._n etc._n last_o without_o a_o monitor_n or_o promptor_n say_v the_o anabaptist_n and_o out_o of_o the_o breast_n or_o by_o heart_n the_o christian_n then_o pray_v for_o all_o emperor_n that_o they_o may_v have_v a_o long_a life_n a_o happy_a government_n a_o safe_a palace_n strong_a force_n a_o faithful_a senate_n a_o honest_a people_n a_o quiet_a world_n and_o what_o thing_n soever_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o mankind_n and_o caesar_n and_o from_o the_o expression_n of_o sine_fw-la monitore_fw-la and_o de_fw-fr pectore_fw-la the_o schismatic_a frame_v a_o argument_n as_o he_o be_v able_a for_o extempore_o prayer_n but_o in_o one_o thing_n i_o can_v but_o be_v of_o pamelius_n mind_n and_o of_o rigaltius_n in_o another_o with_o reference_n to_o the_o understanding_n this_o text._n the_o former_a infer_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o christian_n here_o mention_v that_o apt_a and_o decent_a ceremony_n be_v to_o be_v use_v in_o prayer_n since_o tertullian_n say_v even_o when_o he_o be_v make_v a_o apology_n for_o they_o '_o they_o lift_v up_o their_o eye_n to_o signify_v a_o faithful_a though_o humble_a confidence_n in_o the_o god_n to_o who_o their_o prayer_n be_v address_v they_o spread_v out_o their_o hand_n to_o testify_v their_o innocence_n and_o be_v bareheaded_a to_o let_v the_o naked_a truth_n of_o their_o religion_n appear_v and_o thereby_o profess_v such_o a_o virtue_n and_o piety_n and_o truth_n too_o in_o their_o faith_n and_o manner_n that_o they_o need_v not_o cover_v their_o head_n which_o be_v a_o token_n of_o shame_n nor_o vail_v their_o face_n no_o nor_o hold_v their_o hat_n before_o they_o neither_o since_o they_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o blush_v for_o their_o religion_n nor_o to_o be_v ashamed_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n these_o it_o seem_v were_z in_o those_o day_n symbolical_a ceremony_n but_o i_o have_v reason_n also_o to_o take_v some_o hint_n from_o the_o latter_a interpreter_n of_o this_o place_n in_o tertullian_n to_o prove_v that_o another_o thing_n be_v mean_v by_o sine_fw-la monitore_fw-la and_o de_fw-fr pectore_fw-la than_o what_o the_o separatist_n knavish_o suggest_v viz._n that_o the_o monitor_n here_o denote_v a_o particular_a officer_n among_o the_o heathen_a call_v by_o that_o title_n and_o be_v one_o who_o in_o their_o public_a devotion_n read_v to_o the_o people_n the_o prayer_n set_v down_o in_o writing_n that_o there_o may_v neither_o be_v a_o omission_n of_o word_n or_o any_o expression_n utter_v preposterous_o he_o mention_n also_o another_o officer_n to_o attend_v to_o this_o and_o another_o custos_fw-la who_o call_v on_o the_o people_n not_o to_o be_v too_o loud_a now_o the_o second_o of_o these_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o person_n who_o keep_v the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o roman_a deity_n to_o who_o several_a petition_n and_o service_n be_v direct_v and_o might_n for_o aught_o i_o can_v find_v to_o the_o contrary_a have_v the_o custody_n of_o the_o write_a prayer_n themselves_o this_o some_o will_v have_v to_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o nomenclator_n who_o signify_v the_o name_n of_o the_o heathen_a god_n and_o the_o particular_a deity_n to_o who_o at_o any_o time_n address_n be_v to_o be_v make_v suitable_a to_o particular_a occasion_n and_o want_n for_o these_o like_o the_o canonize_v saint_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o equal_o to_o be_v invoke_v for_o all_o thing_n but_o one_o for_o this_o and_o another_o for_o that_o now_o this_o custos_fw-la in_o rigaltius_n note_n which_o he_o refer_v we_o to_o pliny_n for_o hearken_v and_o instruct_v the_o monitor_n when_o he_o fail_v and_o bring_v forth_o or_o deliver_v the_o book_n and_o declare_v the_o name_n of_o the_o god_n to_o be_v invoke_v that_o so_o they_o may_v not_o absurd_o pray_v to_o mars_n for_o patience_n to_o bacchus_n for_o wisdom_n or_o apollo_n for_o wine_n and_o the_o like_a now_o the_o christian_n address_v themselves_o only_o to_o one_o god_n can_v not_o be_v liable_a to_o such_o mistake_n and_o therefore_o need_v neither_o custos_fw-la nor_o monitor_n because_o frequent_a use_n have_v make_v their_o prayer_n familiar_a so_o that_o all_o have_v they_o perfect_o by_o heart_n and_o therefore_o join_v with_o they_o with_o their_o very_a soul_n and_o be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a in_o their_o daily_a devotion_n as_o if_o they_o never_o hear_v their_o prayer_n before_o or_o be_v every_o day_n to_o change_v their_o prayer_n and_o their_o god_n together_o but_o if_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o separatist_n argument_n shall_v lay_v in_o the_o reason_n why_o as_o tertullian_n say_v they_o need_v not_o this_o monitor_n because_o they_o pray_v the_o pectore_fw-la and_o so_o need_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o form_n to_o direct_v they_o this_o can_v no_o more_o be_v prove_v from_o this_o place_n than_o that_o because_o they_o pray_v sine_fw-la monitore_fw-la the_o christian_n than_o have_v no_o minister_n to_o direct_v the_o people_n either_o by_o premeditate_a or_o conceive_v prayer_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n therefore_o must_v be_v this_o that_o the_o christian_n need_v not_o a_o custos_fw-la or_o a_o monitor_n neither_o any_o to_o direct_v they_o to_o what_o particular_a god_n they_o shall_v pray_v since_o they_o own_v but_o one_o nor_o any_o to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o emperor_n because_o this_o they_o be_v willing_o incline_v to_o and_o do_v it_o from_o or_o with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o this_o be_v a_o very_a probable_a account_n of_o the_o place_n because_o tertullian_n here_o make_v a_o apology_n for_o the_o christian_n to_o alexander_n severus_n and_o antoninus_n his_o son_n show_n how_o hearty_o and_o sincere_o they_o pray_v for_o the_o emperor_n and_o that_o their_o religion_n can_v not_o disturb_v but_o advantage_n their_o government_n because_o pray_v thus_o hearty_o for_o they_o they_o can_v not_o but_o wish_v and_o act_n for_o their_o welfare_n and_o this_o argument_n certain_o hold_v among_o all_o those_o who_o be_v sincere_a in_o religion_n but_o there_o be_v no_o fence_n against_o a_o pharisee_n or_o a_o hypocrite_n only_o we_o must_v remit_v all_o such_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o that_o god_n to_o who_o they_o pretend_v to_o pray_v i_o shall_v conclude_v this_o with_o a_o small_a animadversion_n or_o rather_o advice_n to_o those_o who_o be_v so_o please_v with_o extempore_o prayer_n that_o they_o usual_o deliver_v themselves_o in_o this_o duty_n without_o a_o serious_a and_o orderly_a premeditation_n that_o they_o will_v impartial_o consider_v whether_o when_o their_o mind_n and_o soul_n be_v so_o intent_n on_o the_o invention_n of_o matter_n and_o word_n to_o express_v it_o they_o can_v so_o well_o reflect_v on_o the_o object_n of_o their_o prayer_n especial_o since_o our_o quick_a and_o most_o retire_a thought_n can_v admit_v of_o divers_a object_n at_o the_o same_o moment_n and_o if_o not_o then_o whilst_o man_n be_v invent_v matter_n and_o expression_n to_o fill_v their_o prayer_n it_o may_v be_v worth_a inward_a reflection_n upon_o themselves_o whether_o whilst_o they_o be_v busy_a to_o find_v out_o their_o devotion_n they_o do_v not_o at_o the_o same_o time_n lose_v their_o god_n and_o now_o i_o have_v write_v all_o that_o my_o present_a thought_n suggest_v and_o have_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o the_o strong_a argument_n which_o my_o slender_a ability_n be_v able_a either_o to_o collect_v or_o invent_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o separatist_n as_o it_o be_v common_o manage_v be_v not_o suitable_a to_o the_o be_v and_o attribute_n of_o the_o god_n who_o they_o pretend_v to_o adore_v the_o dependence_n of_o mankind_n on_o he_o nor_o the_o infinite_a distance_n and_o disproportion_n that_o be_v betwixt_o he_o and_o themselves_o which_o may_v perhaps_o add_v something_o to_o the_o fortification_n of_o the_o member_n of_o our_o own_o church_n if_o it_o can_v cause_v some_o sad_a reflection_n in_o the_o better_a nature_a
treat_v of_o the_o idolatry_n of_o the_o gentile_n acacquaint_v the_o world_n that_o by_o the_o mistake_n of_o the_o fundamental_a word_n in_o religion_n it_o be_v of_o old_a turn_v into_o mythology_n and_o gentilism_n the_o same_o may_v we_o also_o say_v of_o those_o person_n who_o pretension_n be_v the_o high_a in_o understand_v the_o deep_a mystery_n of_o christianity_n that_o they_o cover_v the_o bright_a sun_n in_o a_o cloud_n and_o render_v the_o plain_a thing_n obscure_a and_o find_v mystery_n in_o word_n that_o in_o themselves_o be_v most_o obvious_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n easy_o represent_v their_o own_o meaning_n so_o that_o to_o discover_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n needs_o no_o more_o than_o the_o removal_n of_o that_o rubbish_n which_o by_o mystical_a man_n be_v cast_v upon_o it_o yet_o by_o such_o mean_n some_o turn_v the_o christian_a religion_n into_o gibberish_n and_o cause_v it_o to_o speak_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n either_o by_o their_o own_o misapprehension_n or_o a_o industrious_a veiling_n of_o those_o word_n that_o be_v at_o first_o design_v to_o express_v it_o thus_o convert_v a_o plain_a religion_n into_o more_o mystery_n than_o be_v to_o be_v find_v at_o ephesus_n or_o athens_n such_o word_n as_o these_o be_v prayer_n conscience_n faith_n spirit_n gift_n experience_n predestination_n and_o the_o like_a but_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o religion_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v obscure_a because_o god_n service_n be_v a_o rational_a worship_n rom._n 12.1_o and_o therefore_o we_o find_v this_o in_o tully_n haec_fw-la si_fw-la deorum_fw-la signa_fw-la sunt_fw-la cur_n essent_fw-la obscure_v he_o speak_v of_o sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o revelation_n from_o the_o god_n if_o these_o say_v he_o be_v notice_n from_o the_o god_n why_o shall_v they_o be_v so_o obscure_a and_o dark_a and_o in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o divination_n he_o prove_v that_o thing_n which_o be_v obscure_a want_v both_o grace_n and_o majesty_n indeed_o it_o render_v any_o the_o most_o holy_a system_v of_o religion_n extreme_o subject_a to_o the_o censure_n of_o man_n and_o liable_a to_o be_v accuse_v for_o cheat_v and_o imposture_n when_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v two_o face_n may_v easy_o carry_v a_o double_a name_n and_o be_v u●iled_v under_o equivocal_a or_o obscure_a doctrine_n and_o the_o phrase_n by_o which_o it_o be_v exhibit_v to_o the_o world_n be_v mist_v and_o dusky_a if_o they_o be_v not_o quite_o dark_a as_o if_o the_o preserver_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n like_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o england_n intend_v to_o keep_v they_o all_o unto_o themselves_o thus_o theodoret_n hist_o lib._n 2._o report_v of_o leontius_n stain_v with_o the_o arrian_n blasphemy_n that_o he_o endeavour_v with_o subtlety_n to_o hide_v his_o opinion_n under_o a_o dubious_a and_o equivocal_a language_n alter_v the_o sense_n of_o gloria_fw-la patri_fw-la by_o change_v and_o interpose_v some_o little_a preposition_n and_o conjunction_n and_o by_o rehearse_v a_o part_n soft_o to_o himself_o or_o what_o be_v more_o probable_a total_o omit_v it_o and_o another_o part_n with_o a_o audible_a voice_n that_o so_o he_o may_v although_o it_o be_v discover_v avoid_v accusation_n among_o the_o orthodox_n and_o though_o he_o lose_v his_o faith_n yet_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o lose_v the_o bishopric_n of_o antioch_n i_o wish_v our_o sectary_n be_v free_a from_o such_o left-handed_a design_n though_o i_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o their_o advance_n to_o bishopric_n unless_o we_o shall_v conclude_v those_o to_o be_v distract_v who_o yet_o we_o suppose_v to_o be_v very_o wise_a and_o then_o their_o simplicity_n may_v a_o little_a stand_v in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o idiot_n and_o either_o excuse_v they_o for_o mangle_v and_o spoil_v religious_a worship_n by_o make_v mystery_n where_o they_o can_v find_v they_o or_o for_o invent_v folly_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o mystery_n at_o all_o or_o at_o least_o excuse_v they_o if_o they_o refuse_v to_o say_v amen_o to_o all_o the_o mystery_n produce_v by_o other_o we_o be_v all_o i_o confess_v of_o the_o family_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o god_n do_v not_o pray_v with_o we_o though_o he_o be_v the_o master_n of_o this_o great_a family_n and_o it_o will_v be_v absurd_a for_o he_o to_o pray_v unto_o himself_o but_o it_o may_v be_v that_o there_o be_v a_o mystery_n in_o this_o too_o however_o strange_a word_n and_o uncouth_a phrase_n strike_v terror_n and_o amazement_n into_o the_o mind_n of_o proselyte_n that_o they_o may_v by_o this_o method_n be_v soften_v and_o prepare_v the_o more_o easy_o to_o receive_v the_o impression_n of_o those_o principle_n which_o otherwise_o upon_o retirement_n and_o consideration_n their_o free_a reason_n will_v never_o embrace_v and_o true_o this_o be_v a_o honest_a plea_n because_o it_o be_v open_a and_o without_o reserve_v though_o i_o be_o afraid_a there_o be_v a_o little_a knavery_n in_o it_o because_o i_o find_v eusebius_n inform_v we_o hist_o lib._n 4._o that_o some_o of_o the_o disciple_n of_o marcus_n the_o magician_n utter_v many_o hebrew_n name_n that_o they_o may_v affect_v those_o that_o be_v new_o enter_v into_o their_o study_n and_o discipline_n with_o the_o great_a admiration_n and_o amazement_n in_o a_o word_n our_o most_o exalt_a and_o obstinate_a separatist_n be_v much_o of_o the_o temper_n and_o design_n too_o of_o those_o who_o s._n austin_n blame_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o first_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n who_o endeavour_v to_o transcend_v all_o that_o be_v create_v but_o be_v keep_v down_o with_o the_o burden_n of_o mortality_n when_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o know_v what_o they_o be_v ignorant_a of_o and_o can_v not_o understand_v what_o they_o will_v by_o their_o bold_a and_o resolute_a affirmation_n of_o their_o own_o opinion_n they_o bar_v themselves_o from_o the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n choose_v rather_o not_o to_o correct_v their_o own_o perverse_a opinion_n than_o to_o change_v that_o which_o they_o have_v assume_v and_o be_v resolve_v to_o defend_v what_o shall_v i_o trouble_v any_o reader_n with_o what_o they_o prop_n and_o support_v what_o our_o schismatic_n call_v their_o church_n for_o since_o they_o can_v derive_v their_o own_o succession_n they_o bold_o deny_v any_o to_o be_v necessary_a and_o yet_o tertullian_n the_o prescript_n haeret._n cap._n 32._o send_v this_o challenge_n to_o the_o heretic_n then_o edant_fw-la ergo_fw-la origines_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v they_o put_v forth_o the_o origine_fw-la of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o turn_v over_o the_o catalogue_n of_o their_o bishop_n that_o so_o descend_v by_o succession_n from_o the_o beginning_n they_o may_v find_v that_o their_o first_o bishop_n have_v have_v one_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n who_o have_v converse_v with_o and_o accompany_v the_o apostle_n his_o author_n and_o antecessor_n for_o by_o these_o mean_n and_o in_o this_o method_n do_v the_o apostolic_a church_n deduce_v and_o declare_v their_o original_a i_o may_v to_o enlarge_v my_o discourse_n also_o instance_n in_o many_o of_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o the_o separatist_n that_o be_v as_o currant_n as_o they_o be_v common_a among_o they_o which_o yet_o under_o the_o fair_a pretence_n of_o endear_n word_n and_o scripture_n proof_n wound_v the_o deity_n in_o his_o glorious_a attribute_n disturb_v that_o bless_a harmony_n and_o peace_n and_o the_o politic_a government_n of_o mankind_n which_o the_o profession_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n do_v very_o much_o help_v and_o conduce_v to_o and_o therefore_o be_v it_o by_o the_o most_o wise_a god_n recommend_v and_o establish_v in_o the_o world_n but_o i_o shall_v forbear_v these_o thing_n at_o present_a and_o conclude_v all_o with_o the_o testimony_n that_o s._n cyprian_n bear_v to_o borrow_v a_o expression_n from_o the_o spawn_n of_o these_o man_n against_o all_o prayer_n that_o be_v rude_a and_o indigested_a more_o full_a of_o word_n than_o of_o sense_n and_o more_o abound_v with_o long_a period_n than_o matter_n that_o may_v promote_v hearty_a devotion_n for_o the_o father_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o tract_n of_o the_o lord_n prayer_n do_v abundant_o condemn_v such_o thing_n as_o these_o by_o give_v a_o quite_o contrary_a account_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o this_o particular_a because_o after_o he_o have_v give_v this_o advertisement_n that_o god_n be_v a_o god_n at_o hand_n as_o well_o as_o a_o god_n afar_o off_o and_o that_o wherever_o a_o man_n hide_v himself_o he_o certain_o discern_v he_o because_o he_o fill_v heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o see_v both_o the_o good_a and_o the_o bad_a this_o holy_a father_n acquaint_v man_n that_o when_o the_o christian_n be_v congregat_v to_o celebrate_v the_o divine_a office_n with_o the_o priest_n of_o